Search Results for 'board'

Forums Search Search Results for 'board'

Viewing 20 results - 21 through 40 (of 206 total)
  • Author
    Search Results
  • #6386

    In reply to: Orbs of Madjourneys

    At the board game, Zara was the first to break character, although Yasmin had been rolling her eyes in silence for quite some time.

    “They’re all so young and attractive…”

    Yasmin chimed in “Could you add averagely attractive to the prompt? Oh hark at me! Moaning already!”

    Xavier was glad at the break, and stretched his arms, leaning back against the chair. “Time for a bio-break guys, all this setting up is taking a lot of time.”

    Youssef, who was connected via a stream, started to post emojis of food in the chat. He’d been obviously hungry for a while as usual.

    “Ok guys,” said Zara sighing. “That’s settled for today then. Anyway, it’s pretty late for Youssef, let’s resume tomorrow. Meanwhile, I’ll be posting the characters concept art, but don’t hold your breath on that.”

    #6379

    In reply to: Prompts of Madjourneys

    EricEric
    Keymaster

      Asking to give each of the 4 characters some particular traits that makes them uniquely distinctive and recognizable

      The four friends, Zara, Xavier, Yasmin, and Youssef, each have their own unique traits that make them stand out and recognizable.

      Zara is the leader of the group, she is confident, and always ready for an adventure. She is a natural leader and has a strong sense of justice. She is also a tech-savvy person, always carrying a variety of gadgets with her, and is always the first to try out new technology.

      Xavier is the joker of the group, always cracking jokes and making puns. He is a free-spirited person who is always up for an adventure, he has a great sense of humor and is not afraid to be himself. He is also an artist and often carries a sketchbook and pencils with him, he likes to draw whatever he sees in his journeys.

      Yasmin is the brains of the group, she is intelligent and logical. She is always able to think on her feet and come up with a plan when things get tough. She is also a bit of a perfectionist and likes to have everything organized. She is a history buff and always carries a notebook with her to document her findings.

      Youssef is the muscle of the group, He is physically strong, and always ready to help out in a fight. He is also a bit of a foodie and loves trying new dishes. He is always the first one to volunteer to carry the heavy bags and equipment. He is also a bit of a daredevil and loves trying out new sports and activities.

      Give each of them a color, and an animal, and a secret name in a funny language

      The four friends, Zara, Xavier, Yasmin, and Youssef, each have their own unique traits that make them stand out and recognizable.

      Zara is the leader of the group, her color is red, her animal is a lion, and her secret name in a funny language is “Zaraloon”

      Xavier is the joker of the group, his color is orange, his animal is a monkey, and his secret name in a funny language is “Xavimunk”

      Yasmin is the brains of the group, her color is blue, her animal is an owl, and her secret name in a funny language is “Yasminowl”

      Youssef is the muscle of the group, his color is green, his animal is a bear, and his secret name in a funny language is “Youssefbear”

      Now, we need physical descriptions for each of them. Also, their ages, height, clothes, facial features, ethnicity (for instance Youssef may be half Yemeni and half Norwegian), etc. with a good mix of generic and eccentric. We also need surnames congruent with their described ethnicity, not too bland, but not too daft either. For instance Youssef Olafsson, Zara Patara-Smythe, etc. Also explain how they become friends.

      Zara Patara-Smythe is a 25-year-old woman of mixed heritage, her mother is Indian and her father is British. She has long, dark hair that she keeps in a sleek ponytail, dark brown eyes and a sharp jawline. She stands at 5’6″ and has a toned and athletic build. She usually wears practical clothing that allows her to move around easily, such as cargo pants and a tank top.

      Xavier Olafsson is a 27-year-old man of Norwegian and Danish descent. He has blonde hair that he keeps in a messy style, blue eyes, and a charming smile. He stands at 6’1″ and has a lean build. He is always seen wearing a colorful and bold clothing, such as a Hawaiian shirt and shorts.

      Yasmin Ahmed is a 23-year-old woman of Egyptian descent. She has long, black hair that she keeps in a tight braid, dark brown eyes and a round face. She stands at 5’4″ and has a petite build. She usually wears conservative clothing, such as long skirts and blouses.

      Youssef Ali is a 26-year-old man of half Yemeni, half Norwegian descent. He has short, curly black hair, dark brown eyes and a square jawline. He stands at 6’2″ and has a muscular build. He usually wears comfortable clothing such as a t-shirt and jeans, and always has a backpack on his shoulder.

      The four of them became friends in college, they were all studying different majors, but they all shared a love for adventure and exploration. They found themselves in the same class project, and from there they formed a strong bond. After college, they decided to keep exploring the world together, and went on many trips and adventures, always seeking for something new and exciting.

      1/ Change the ages of Zara, Xavier, Yasmin and Youssef to more random patterns – rewrite if needed how they met each other to reflect eventual age gaps. Give them some flaws, mental or physical challenges.
      2/ increase again the age gaps while keeping the youngest one a young adult, and remove “minor” from the flaws descriptions

      Zara is a 22-year-old woman who is the youngest of the group. She is a free-spirited, adventurous person, but also a bit reckless and impulsive. She has a scar on her cheek that she got from a Skateboarding accident when she was a teenager.

      Xavier is a 45-year-old man who is the oldest of the group. He is a responsible and level-headed person, but also a bit of a perfectionist and can be hard on himself and others. He has dyslexia which he has been able to work around and it doesn’t impede his daily life.

      Yasmin is a 38-year-old woman who is the second oldest of the group. She is a kind and compassionate person, but also a bit of a pushover and can have trouble standing up for herself. She has social anxiety that affect her in certain situations and she have been working on coping mechanisms.

      Youssef is a 33-year-old man who is the second youngest of the group. He is a charismatic and outgoing person, but also a bit of a flirt and can be a bit insensitive to others feelings. He has ADHD which he has been able to manage with medication, but it still affects him from time to time.

      The group met each other through different means, Xavier and Yasmin met at work, Zara and Youssef met at a college class, and eventually, they all became friends through common interests and activities. They decided to go on this adventure together because they were all looking for a change in their lives and wanted to explore the unknown.

      #6350
      TracyTracy
      Participant

        Transportation

        Isaac Stokes 1804-1877

         

        Isaac was born in Churchill, Oxfordshire in 1804, and was the youngest brother of my 4X great grandfather Thomas Stokes. The Stokes family were stone masons for generations in Oxfordshire and Gloucestershire, and Isaac’s occupation was a mason’s labourer in 1834 when he was sentenced at the Lent Assizes in Oxford to fourteen years transportation for stealing tools.

        Churchill where the Stokes stonemasons came from: on 31 July 1684 a fire destroyed 20 houses and many other buildings, and killed four people. The village was rebuilt higher up the hill, with stone houses instead of the old timber-framed and thatched cottages. The fire was apparently caused by a baker who, to avoid chimney tax, had knocked through the wall from her oven to her neighbour’s chimney.

        Isaac stole a pick axe, the value of 2 shillings and the property of Thomas Joyner of Churchill; a kibbeaux and a trowel value 3 shillings the property of Thomas Symms; a hammer and axe value 5 shillings, property of John Keen of Sarsden.

        (The word kibbeaux seems to only exists in relation to Isaac Stokes sentence and whoever was the first to write it was perhaps being creative with the spelling of a kibbo, a miners or a metal bucket. This spelling is repeated in the criminal reports and the newspaper articles about Isaac, but nowhere else).

        In March 1834 the Removal of Convicts was announced in the Oxford University and City Herald: Isaac Stokes and several other prisoners were removed from the Oxford county gaol to the Justitia hulk at Woolwich “persuant to their sentences of transportation at our Lent Assizes”.

        via digitalpanopticon:

        Hulks were decommissioned (and often unseaworthy) ships that were moored in rivers and estuaries and refitted to become floating prisons. The outbreak of war in America in 1775 meant that it was no longer possible to transport British convicts there. Transportation as a form of punishment had started in the late seventeenth century, and following the Transportation Act of 1718, some 44,000 British convicts were sent to the American colonies. The end of this punishment presented a major problem for the authorities in London, since in the decade before 1775, two-thirds of convicts at the Old Bailey received a sentence of transportation – on average 283 convicts a year. As a result, London’s prisons quickly filled to overflowing with convicted prisoners who were sentenced to transportation but had no place to go.

        To increase London’s prison capacity, in 1776 Parliament passed the “Hulks Act” (16 Geo III, c.43). Although overseen by local justices of the peace, the hulks were to be directly managed and maintained by private contractors. The first contract to run a hulk was awarded to Duncan Campbell, a former transportation contractor. In August 1776, the Justicia, a former transportation ship moored in the River Thames, became the first prison hulk. This ship soon became full and Campbell quickly introduced a number of other hulks in London; by 1778 the fleet of hulks on the Thames held 510 prisoners.
        Demand was so great that new hulks were introduced across the country. There were hulks located at Deptford, Chatham, Woolwich, Gosport, Plymouth, Portsmouth, Sheerness and Cork.

        The Justitia via rmg collections:

        Justitia

        Convicts perform hard labour at the Woolwich Warren. The hulk on the river is the ‘Justitia’. Prisoners were kept on board such ships for months awaiting deportation to Australia. The ‘Justitia’ was a 260 ton prison hulk that had been originally moored in the Thames when the American War of Independence put a stop to the transportation of criminals to the former colonies. The ‘Justitia’ belonged to the shipowner Duncan Campbell, who was the Government contractor who organized the prison-hulk system at that time. Campbell was subsequently involved in the shipping of convicts to the penal colony at Botany Bay (in fact Port Jackson, later Sydney, just to the north) in New South Wales, the ‘first fleet’ going out in 1788.

         

        While searching for records for Isaac Stokes I discovered that another Isaac Stokes was transported to New South Wales in 1835 as well. The other one was a butcher born in 1809, sentenced in London for seven years, and he sailed on the Mary Ann. Our Isaac Stokes sailed on the Lady Nugent, arriving in NSW in April 1835, having set sail from England in December 1834.

        Lady Nugent was built at Bombay in 1813. She made four voyages under contract to the British East India Company (EIC). She then made two voyages transporting convicts to Australia, one to New South Wales and one to Van Diemen’s Land (Tasmania). (via Wikipedia)

        via freesettlerorfelon website:

        On 20 November 1834, 100 male convicts were transferred to the Lady Nugent from the Justitia Hulk and 60 from the Ganymede Hulk at Woolwich, all in apparent good health. The Lady Nugent departed Sheerness on 4 December 1834.

        SURGEON OLIVER SPROULE

        Oliver Sproule kept a Medical Journal from 7 November 1834 to 27 April 1835. He recorded in his journal the weather conditions they experienced in the first two weeks:

        ‘In the course of the first week or ten days at sea, there were eight or nine on the sick list with catarrhal affections and one with dropsy which I attribute to the cold and wet we experienced during that period beating down channel. Indeed the foremost berths in the prison at this time were so wet from leaking in that part of the ship, that I was obliged to issue dry beds and bedding to a great many of the prisoners to preserve their health, but after crossing the Bay of Biscay the weather became fine and we got the damp beds and blankets dried, the leaks partially stopped and the prison well aired and ventilated which, I am happy to say soon manifested a favourable change in the health and appearance of the men.

        Besides the cases given in the journal I had a great many others to treat, some of them similar to those mentioned but the greater part consisted of boils, scalds, and contusions which would not only be too tedious to enter but I fear would be irksome to the reader. There were four births on board during the passage which did well, therefore I did not consider it necessary to give a detailed account of them in my journal the more especially as they were all favourable cases.

        Regularity and cleanliness in the prison, free ventilation and as far as possible dry decks turning all the prisoners up in fine weather as we were lucky enough to have two musicians amongst the convicts, dancing was tolerated every afternoon, strict attention to personal cleanliness and also to the cooking of their victuals with regular hours for their meals, were the only prophylactic means used on this occasion, which I found to answer my expectations to the utmost extent in as much as there was not a single case of contagious or infectious nature during the whole passage with the exception of a few cases of psora which soon yielded to the usual treatment. A few cases of scurvy however appeared on board at rather an early period which I can attribute to nothing else but the wet and hardships the prisoners endured during the first three or four weeks of the passage. I was prompt in my treatment of these cases and they got well, but before we arrived at Sydney I had about thirty others to treat.’

        The Lady Nugent arrived in Port Jackson on 9 April 1835 with 284 male prisoners. Two men had died at sea. The prisoners were landed on 27th April 1835 and marched to Hyde Park Barracks prior to being assigned. Ten were under the age of 14 years.

        The Lady Nugent:

        Lady Nugent

         

        Isaac’s distinguishing marks are noted on various criminal registers and record books:

        “Height in feet & inches: 5 4; Complexion: Ruddy; Hair: Light brown; Eyes: Hazel; Marks or Scars: Yes [including] DEVIL on lower left arm, TSIS back of left hand, WS lower right arm, MHDW back of right hand.”

        Another includes more detail about Isaac’s tattoos:

        “Two slight scars right side of mouth, 2 moles above right breast, figure of the devil and DEVIL and raised mole, lower left arm; anchor, seven dots half moon, TSIS and cross, back of left hand; a mallet, door post, A, mans bust, sun, WS, lower right arm; woman, MHDW and shut knife, back of right hand.”

         

        Lady Nugent record book

         

        From How tattoos became fashionable in Victorian England (2019 article in TheConversation by Robert Shoemaker and Zoe Alkar):

        “Historical tattooing was not restricted to sailors, soldiers and convicts, but was a growing and accepted phenomenon in Victorian England. Tattoos provide an important window into the lives of those who typically left no written records of their own. As a form of “history from below”, they give us a fleeting but intriguing understanding of the identities and emotions of ordinary people in the past.
        As a practice for which typically the only record is the body itself, few systematic records survive before the advent of photography. One exception to this is the written descriptions of tattoos (and even the occasional sketch) that were kept of institutionalised people forced to submit to the recording of information about their bodies as a means of identifying them. This particularly applies to three groups – criminal convicts, soldiers and sailors. Of these, the convict records are the most voluminous and systematic.
        Such records were first kept in large numbers for those who were transported to Australia from 1788 (since Australia was then an open prison) as the authorities needed some means of keeping track of them.”

        On the 1837 census Isaac was working for the government at Illiwarra, New South Wales. This record states that he arrived on the Lady Nugent in 1835. There are three other indent records for an Isaac Stokes in the following years, but the transcriptions don’t provide enough information to determine which Isaac Stokes it was. In April 1837 there was an abscondment, and an arrest/apprehension in May of that year, and in 1843 there was a record of convict indulgences.

        From the Australian government website regarding “convict indulgences”:

        “By the mid-1830s only six per cent of convicts were locked up. The vast majority worked for the government or free settlers and, with good behaviour, could earn a ticket of leave, conditional pardon or and even an absolute pardon. While under such orders convicts could earn their own living.”

         

        In 1856 in Camden, NSW, Isaac Stokes married Catherine Daly. With no further information on this record it would be impossible to know for sure if this was the right Isaac Stokes. This couple had six children, all in the Camden area, but none of the records provided enough information. No occupation or place or date of birth recorded for Isaac Stokes.

        I wrote to the National Library of Australia about the marriage record, and their reply was a surprise! Issac and Catherine were married on 30 September 1856, at the house of the Rev. Charles William Rigg, a Methodist minister, and it was recorded that Isaac was born in Edinburgh in 1821, to parents James Stokes and Sarah Ellis!  The age at the time of the marriage doesn’t match Isaac’s age at death in 1877, and clearly the place of birth and parents didn’t match either. Only his fathers occupation of stone mason was correct.  I wrote back to the helpful people at the library and they replied that the register was in a very poor condition and that only two and a half entries had survived at all, and that Isaac and Catherines marriage was recorded over two pages.

        I searched for an Isaac Stokes born in 1821 in Edinburgh on the Scotland government website (and on all the other genealogy records sites) and didn’t find it. In fact Stokes was a very uncommon name in Scotland at the time. I also searched Australian immigration and other records for another Isaac Stokes born in Scotland or born in 1821, and found nothing.  I was unable to find a single record to corroborate this mysterious other Isaac Stokes.

        As the age at death in 1877 was correct, I assume that either Isaac was lying, or that some mistake was made either on the register at the home of the Methodist minster, or a subsequent mistranscription or muddle on the remnants of the surviving register.  Therefore I remain convinced that the Camden stonemason Isaac Stokes was indeed our Isaac from Oxfordshire.

         

        I found a history society newsletter article that mentioned Isaac Stokes, stone mason, had built the Glenmore church, near Camden, in 1859.

        Glenmore Church

         

        From the Wollondilly museum April 2020 newsletter:

        Glenmore Church Stokes

         

        From the Camden History website:

        “The stone set over the porch of Glenmore Church gives the date of 1860. The church was begun in 1859 on land given by Joseph Moore. James Rogers of Picton was given the contract to build and local builder, Mr. Stokes, carried out the work. Elizabeth Moore, wife of Edward, laid the foundation stone. The first service was held on 19th March 1860. The cemetery alongside the church contains the headstones and memorials of the areas early pioneers.”

         

        Isaac died on the 3rd September 1877. The inquest report puts his place of death as Bagdelly, near to Camden, and another death register has put Cambelltown, also very close to Camden.  His age was recorded as 71 and the inquest report states his cause of death was “rupture of one of the large pulmonary vessels of the lung”.  His wife Catherine died in childbirth in 1870 at the age of 43.

         

        Isaac and Catherine’s children:

        William Stokes 1857-1928

        Catherine Stokes 1859-1846

        Sarah Josephine Stokes 1861-1931

        Ellen Stokes 1863-1932

        Rosanna Stokes 1865-1919

        Louisa Stokes 1868-1844.

         

        It’s possible that Catherine Daly was a transported convict from Ireland.

         

        Some time later I unexpectedly received a follow up email from The Oaks Heritage Centre in Australia.

        “The Gaudry papers which we have in our archive record him (Isaac Stokes) as having built: the church, the school and the teachers residence.  Isaac is recorded in the General return of convicts: 1837 and in Grevilles Post Office directory 1872 as a mason in Glenmore.”

        Isaac Stokes directory

        #6345
        TracyTracy
        Participant

          Crime and Punishment in Tetbury

           

          I noticed that there were quite a number of Brownings of Tetbury in the newspaper archives involved in criminal activities while doing a routine newspaper search to supplement the information in the usual ancestry records. I expanded the tree to include cousins, and offsping of cousins, in order to work out who was who and how, if at all, these individuals related to our Browning family.

          I was expecting to find some of our Brownings involved in the Swing Riots in Tetbury in 1830, but did not. Most of our Brownings (including cousins) were stone masons. Most of the rioters in 1830 were agricultural labourers.

          The Browning crimes are varied, and by todays standards, not for the most part terribly serious ~ you would be unlikely to receive a sentence of hard labour for being found in an outhouse with the intent to commit an unlawful act nowadays, or for being drunk.

          The central character in this chapter is Isaac Browning (my 4x great grandfather), who did not appear in any criminal registers, but the following individuals can be identified in the family structure through their relationship to him.

           

          RICHARD LOCK BROWNING born in 1853 was Isaac’s grandson, his son George’s son. Richard was a mason. In 1879 he and Henry Browning of the same age were sentenced to one month hard labour for stealing two pigeons in Tetbury. Henry Browning was Isaac’s nephews son.
          In 1883 Richard Browning, mason of Tetbury, was charged with obtaining food and lodging under false pretences, but was found not guilty and acquitted.
          In 1884 Richard Browning, mason of Tetbury, was sentenced to one month hard labour for game trespass.

          Richard had been fined a number of times in Tetbury:

          Richard Browning

          Richard Lock Browning was five feet eight inches tall, dark hair, grey eyes, an oval face and a dark complexion. He had two cuts on the back of his head (in February 1879) and a scar on his right eyebrow.

           

          HENRY BROWNING, who was stealing pigeons with Richard Lock Browning in 1879, (Isaac’s brother Williams grandson, son of George Browning and his wife Charity) was charged with being drunk in 1882 and ordered to pay a fine of one shilling and costs of fourteen shillings, or seven days hard labour.

          Henry was found guilty of gaming in the highway at Tetbury in 1872 and was sentenced to seven days hard labour. In 1882 Henry (who was also a mason) was charged with assault but discharged.
          Henry was five feet five inches tall, brown hair and brown eyes, a long visage and a fresh complexion.
          Henry emigrated with his daughter to Canada in 1913, and died in Vancouver in 1919.

           

          THOMAS BUCKINGHAM 1808-1846 (Isaacs daughter Janes husband) was charged with stealing a black gelding in Tetbury in 1838. No true bill. (A “no true bill” means the jury did not find probable cause to continue a case.)

          Thomas did however neglect to pay his taxes in 1832:

          Thomas Buckingham

           

          LEWIN BUCKINGHAM (grandson of Isaac, his daughter Jane’s son) was found guilty in 1846 stealing two fowls in Tetbury when he was sixteen years old.
          In 1846 he was sentence to one month hard labour (or pay ten shillings fine and ten shillings costs) for loitering with the intent to trespass in search of conies.
          A year later in 1847, he and three other young men were sentenced to four months hard labour for larceny.
          Lewin was five feet three inches tall, with brown hair and brown eyes, long visage, sallow complexion, and had a scar on his left arm.

           

          JOHN BUCKINGHAM born circa 1832, a Tetbury labourer (Isaac’s grandson, Lewin’s brother) was sentenced to six weeks hard labour for larceny in 1855 for stealing a duck in Cirencester. The notes on the register mention that he had been employed by Mr LOCK, Angel Inn. (John’s grandmother was Mary Lock so this is likely a relative).

          John Buckingham

           

          The previous year in 1854 John was sentenced to one month or a one pound fine for assaulting and beating W. Wood.
          John was five feet eight and three quarter inches tall, light brown hair and grey eyes, an oval visage and a fresh complexion. He had a scar on his left arm and inside his right knee.

           

          JOSEPH PERRET was born circa 1831 and he was a Tetbury labourer. (He was Isaac’s granddaughter Charlotte Buckingham’s husband)
          In 1855 he assaulted William Wood and was sentenced to one month or a two pound ten shilling fine. Was it the same W Wood that his wifes cousin John assaulted the year before?
          In 1869 Joseph was sentenced to one month hard labour for feloniously receiving a cupboard known to be stolen.

           

          JAMES BUCKINGAM born circa 1822 in Tetbury was a shoemaker. (Isaac’s nephew, his sister Hannah’s son)
          In 1854 the Tetbury shoemaker was sentenced to four months hard labour for stealing 30 lbs of lead off someones house.
          In 1856 the Tetbury shoemaker received two months hard labour or pay £2 fine and 12 s costs for being found in pursuit of game.
          In 1868 he was sentenced to two months hard labour for stealing a gander. A unspecified previous conviction is noted.
          1871 the Tetbury shoemaker was found in an outhouse for an unlawful purpose and received ten days hard labour. The register notes that his sister is Mrs Cook, the Green, Tetbury. (James sister Prudence married Thomas Cook)
          James sister Charlotte married a shoemaker and moved to UTAH.
          James was five feet eight inches tall, dark hair and blue eyes, a long visage and a florid complexion. He had a scar on his forehead and a mole on the right side of his neck and abdomen, and a scar on the right knee.

          #6338
          TracyTracy
          Participant

            Albert Parker Edwards

            1876-1930

            Albert Parker Edwards

             

            Albert Parker Edwards, my great grandfather, was born in Aston, Warwickshire in 1876.  On the 1881 census he was living with his parents Enoch and Amelia in Bournebrook, Northfield, Worcestershire.  Enoch was a button tool maker at the time of the census.

            In 1890 Albert was indentured in an apprenticeship as a pawnbroker in Tipton, Staffordshire.

            1890 indenture

             

            On the 1891 census Albert was a lodger in Tipton at the home of Phoebe Levy, pawnbroker, and Alberts occupation was an apprentice.

            Albert married Annie Elizabeth Stokes in 1898 in Evesham, and their first son, my grandfather Albert Garnet Edwards (1898-1950), was born six months later in Crabbs Cross.  On the 1901 census, Annie was in hospital as a patient and Albert was living at Crabbs Cross with a boarder, his brother Garnet Edwards.  Their two year old son Albert Garnet was staying with his uncle Ralph, Albert Parkers brother, also in Crabbs Cross.

            Albert and Annie kept the Cricketers Arms hotel on Beoley Road in Redditch until around 1920. They had a further four children while living there: Doris May Edwards (1902-1974),  Ralph Clifford Edwards (1903-1988),  Ena Flora Edwards (1908-1983) and Osmond Edwards (1910-2000).

             

            In 1906 Albert was assaulted during an incident in the Cricketers Arms.

            Bromsgrove & Droitwich Messenger – Saturday 18 August 1906:

            1906 incident

            1906 assault

             

            In 1910 a gold medal was given to Albert Parker Edwards by Mr. Banks, a policeman, in Redditch for saving the life of his two children from drowning in a brook on the Proctor farm which adjoined The Cricketers Arms.  The story my father heard was that policeman Banks could not persuade the town of Redditch to come up with an award for Albert Parker Edwards so policeman Banks did it himself.  William Banks, police constable, was living on Beoley Road on the 1911 census. His son Thomas was aged 5 and his daughter Frances was 8.  It seems that when the father retired from the police he moved to Worcester. Thomas went into the hotel business and in 1939 was the manager of the Abbey hotel in Kenilworth. Frances married Edward Pardoe and was living along Redditch Road, Alvechurch in 1939.

            My grandmother Peggy had the gold medal put on a gold chain for me in the 1970s.  When I left England in the 1980s, I gave it back to her for safekeeping. When she died, the medal on the chain ended up in my fathers possession, who claims to have no knowledge that it was once given to me!

            The medal:

            1910 medal

            Albert Parker Edwards wearing the medal:

            APE wearing medal

             

            In 1921 Albert was at the The Royal Exchange hotel in Droitwich:

            Royal Exchange

             

            Between 1922 and 1927 Albert kept the Bear Hotel in Evesham:

            APE Bear

            The Bear

             

            Then Albert and Annie moved to the Red Lion at Astwood Bank:

            Red Lion

             

            Albert in the garden behind the Red Lion:

            APE Red Lion

             

            They stayed at the Red Lion until Albert Parker Edwards died on the 11th of February, 1930 aged 53.

            APE probate

            #6337
            TracyTracy
            Participant

              Annie Elizabeth Stokes

              1871-1961

              “Grandma E”

              Annie Stokes

               

              Annie, my great grandmother, was born 2 Jan 1871 in Merstow Green, Evesham, Worcestershire.  Her father Fred Stokes was a wheelwright.  On  the 1771 census in Merston Green Annie was 3 months old and there was quite a houseful: Annies parents Fred and Rebecca, Fred’s parents Thomas and Eliza and two of their daughters, three apprentices, a lodger and one of Thomas’s grandsons.

              1771 census Merstow Green, Evesham:

              1771 census

               

              Annie at school in the early 1870s in Broadway. Annie is in the front on the left and her brother Fred is in the centre of the first seated row:

              Annie 1870s Broadway

               

              In 1881 Annie was a 10 year old visitor at the Angel Inn, Chipping Camden. A boarder there was 19 year old William Halford, a wheelwright apprentice.  John Such, a 62 year old widower, was the innkeeper. Her parents and two siblings were living at La Quinta, on Main Street in Broadway.

              According to her obituary in 1962, “When the Maxton family visited Broadway to stay with Mr and Madame de Navarro at Court Farm, they offered Annie a family post with them which took her for several years to Paris and other parts of the continent.”

              Mary Anderson was an American theatre actress. In 1890 she married Antonio Fernando de Navarro. She became known as Mary Anderson de Navarro. They settled at Court Farm in the Cotswolds, Broadway, Worcestershire, where she cultivated an interest in music and became a noted hostess with a distinguished circle of musical, literary and ecclesiastical guests. As in the years when Mary lived there, it was often filled with visiting artists and musicians, including Myra Hess and a young Jacqueline du Pré. (via Wikipedia)

              Court Farm, Broadway:

              Court Farm Broadway

               

               

              Annie was an assistant to a tobacconist in West Bromwich in 1991, living as a boarder with William Calcutt and family.  He future husband Albert was living in neighbouring Tipton in 1891, working at a pawnbroker apprenticeship.

              Annie married Albert Parker Edwards in 1898 in Evesham. On the 1901 census, she was in hospital in Redditch.

              By 1911, Anne and Albert had five children and were living at the Cricketers Arms in Redditch.

              cricketers arms

               

              Behind the bar in 1904 shortly after taking over at the Cricketers Arms. From a book on Redditch pubs:

              cricketers

               

              Annie was referred to in later years as Grandma E, probably to differentiate between her and my fathers Grandma T, as both lived to a great age.

              Annie with her grandson Reg on the left and her daughter in law Peggy on the right, in the early 1950s:

              1950 Annie

               

              Annie at my christening in 1959:

              1959 christening

               

              Annie died 30 Dec 1961, aged 90, at Ravenscourt nursing home, Redditch. Her obituary in the Droitwich Guardian in January 1962:

              Annie obit

              Note that this obituary contains an obvious error: Annie’s father was Frederick Stokes, and Thomas was his father.

              #6324
              TracyTracy
              Participant

                STONE MANOR

                 

                Hildred Orgill Warren born in 1900, my grandmothers sister, married Reginald Williams in Stone, Worcestershire in March 1924. Their daughter Joan was born there in October of that year.

                Hildred was a chaffeur on the 1921 census, living at home in Stourbridge with her father (my great grandfather) Samuel Warren, mechanic. I recall my grandmother saying that Hildred was one of the first lady chauffeurs. On their wedding certificate, Reginald is also a chauffeur.

                1921 census, Stourbridge:

                Hildred 1921

                 

                Hildred and Reg worked at Stone Manor.  There is a family story of Hildred being involved in a car accident involving a fatality and that she had to go to court.

                Stone Manor is in a tiny village called Stone, near Kidderminster, Worcestershire. It used to be a private house, but has been a hotel and nightclub for some years. We knew in the family that Hildred and Reg worked at Stone Manor and that Joan was born there. Around 2007 Joan held a family party there.

                Stone Manor, Stone, Worcestershire:

                stone manor

                 

                 

                I asked on a Kidderminster Family Research group about Stone Manor in the 1920s:

                “the original Stone Manor burnt down and the current building dates from the early 1920’s and was built for James Culcheth Hill, completed in 1926”
                But was there a fire at Stone Manor?
                “I’m not sure there was a fire at the Stone Manor… there seems to have been a fire at another big house a short distance away and it looks like stories have crossed over… as the dates are the same…”

                 

                JC Hill was one of the witnesses at Hildred and Reginalds wedding in Stone in 1924. K Warren, Hildreds sister Kay, was the other:

                Hildred and Reg marriage

                 

                I searched the census and electoral rolls for James Culcheth Hill and found him at the Stone Manor on the 1929-1931 electoral rolls for Stone, and Hildred and Reginald living at The Manor House Lodge, Stone:

                Hildred Manor Lodge

                 

                On the 1911 census James Culcheth Hill was a 12 year old student at Eastmans Royal Naval Academy, Northwood Park, Crawley, Winchester. He was born in Kidderminster in 1899. On the same census page, also a student at the school, is Reginald Culcheth Holcroft, born in 1900 in Stourbridge.  The unusual middle name would seem to indicate that they might be related.

                A member of the Kidderminster Family Research group kindly provided this article:

                stone manor death

                 

                 

                SHOT THROUGH THE TEMPLE

                Well known Worcestershire man’s tragic death.

                Dudley Chronicle 27 March 1930.

                Well known in Worcestershire, especially the Kidderminster district, Mr Philip Rowland Hill MA LLD who was mayor of Kidderminster in 1907 was found dead with a bullet wound through his temple on board his yacht, anchored off Cannes, on Friday, recently. A harbour watchman discovered the dead man huddled in a chair on board the yacht. A small revolver was lying on the blood soaked carpet beside him.

                Friends of Mr Hill, whose London address is given as Grosvenor House, Park Lane, say that he appeared despondent since last month when he was involved in a motor car accident on the Antibes ~ Nice road. He was then detained by the police after his car collided with a small motor lorry driven by two Italians, who were killed in the crash. Later he was released on bail of 180,000 francs (£1440) pending an investigation of a charge of being responsible for the fatal accident. …….

                Mr Rowland Hill (Philips father) was heir to Sir Charles Holcroft, the wealthy Staffordshire man, and managed his estates for him, inheriting the property on the death of Sir Charles. On the death of Mr Rowland HIll, which took place at the Firs, Kidderminster, his property was inherited by Mr James (Culcheth) Hill who had built a mansion at Stone, near Kidderminster. Mr Philip Rowland Hill assisted his brother in managing the estate. …….

                At the time of the collison both brothers were in the car.

                This article doesn’t mention who was driving the car ~ could the family story of a car accident be this one?  Hildred and Reg were working at Stone Manor, both were (or at least previously had been) chauffeurs, and Philip Hill was helping James Culcheth Hill manage the Stone Manor estate at the time.

                 

                This photograph was taken circa 1931 in Llanaeron, Wales.  Hildred is in the middle on the back row:

                Llanaeron

                Sally Gray sent the photo with this message:

                “Joan gave me a short note: Photo was taken when they lived in Wales, at Llanaeron, before Janet was born, & Aunty Lorna (my mother) lived with them, to take Joan to school in Aberaeron, as they only spoke Welsh at the local school.”

                Hildred and Reginalds daughter Janet was born in 1932 in Stratford.  It would appear that Hildred and Reg moved to Wales just after the car accident, and shortly afterwards moved to Stratford.

                In 1921 James Culcheth Hill was living at Red Hill House in Stourbridge. Although I have not been able to trace Reginald Williams yet, perhaps this Stourbridge connection with his employer explains how Hildred met Reginald.

                Sir Reginald Culcheth Holcroft, the other pupil at the school in Winchester with James Culcheth Hill, was indeed related, as Sir Holcroft left his estate to James Culcheth Hill’s father.  Sir Reginald was born in 1899 in Upper Swinford, Stourbridge.  Hildred also lived in that part of Stourbridge in the early 1900s.

                1921 Red Hill House:

                Red Hill House 1921

                 

                The 2007 family reunion organized by Joan Williams at Stone Manor: Joan in black and white at the front.

                2007 Stone Manor

                 

                Unrelated to the Warrens, my fathers friends (and customers at The Fox when my grandmother Peggy Edwards owned it) Geoff and Beryl Lamb later bought Stone Manor.

                #6306
                TracyTracy
                Participant

                  Looking for Robert Staley

                   

                  William Warren (1835-1880) of Newhall (Stapenhill) married Elizabeth Staley (1836-1907) in 1858. Elizabeth was born in Newhall, the daughter of John Staley (1795-1876) and Jane Brothers. John was born in Newhall, and Jane was born in Armagh, Ireland, and they were married in Armagh in 1820. Elizabeths older brothers were born in Ireland: William in 1826 and Thomas in Dublin in 1830. Francis was born in Liverpool in 1834, and then Elizabeth in Newhall in 1836; thereafter the children were born in Newhall.

                  Marriage of John Staley and Jane Brothers in 1820:

                  1820 marriage Armagh

                   

                   

                  My grandmother related a story about an Elizabeth Staley who ran away from boarding school and eloped to Ireland, but later returned. The only Irish connection found so far is Jane Brothers, so perhaps she meant Elizabeth Staley’s mother. A boarding school seems unlikely, and it would seem that it was John Staley who went to Ireland.

                  The 1841 census states Jane’s age as 33, which would make her just 12 at the time of her marriage. The 1851 census states her age as 44, making her 13 at the time of her 1820 marriage, and the 1861 census estimates her birth year as a more likely 1804. Birth records in Ireland for her have not been found. It’s possible, perhaps, that she was in service in the Newhall area as a teenager (more likely than boarding school), and that John and Jane ran off to get married in Ireland, although I haven’t found any record of a child born to them early in their marriage. John was an agricultural labourer, and later a coal miner.

                  John Staley was the son of Joseph Staley (1756-1838) and Sarah Dumolo (1764-). Joseph and Sarah were married by licence in Newhall in 1782. Joseph was a carpenter on the marriage licence, but later a collier (although not necessarily a miner).

                  The Derbyshire Record Office holds records of  an “Estimate of Joseph Staley of Newhall for the cost of continuing to work Pisternhill Colliery” dated 1820 and addresssed to Mr Bloud at Calke Abbey (presumably the owner of the mine)

                  Josephs parents were Robert Staley and Elizabeth. I couldn’t find a baptism or birth record for Robert Staley. Other trees on an ancestry site had his birth in Elton, but with no supporting documents. Robert, as stated in his 1795 will, was a Yeoman.

                  “Yeoman: A former class of small freeholders who farm their own land; a commoner of good standing.”
                  “Husbandman: The old word for a farmer below the rank of yeoman. A husbandman usually held his land by copyhold or leasehold tenure and may be regarded as the ‘average farmer in his locality’. The words ‘yeoman’ and ‘husbandman’ were gradually replaced in the later 18th and 19th centuries by ‘farmer’.”

                  He left a number of properties in Newhall and Hartshorne (near Newhall) including dwellings, enclosures, orchards, various yards, barns and acreages. It seemed to me more likely that he had inherited them, rather than moving into the village and buying them.

                  There is a mention of Robert Staley in a 1782 newpaper advertisement.

                  “Fire Engine To Be Sold.  An exceedingly good fire engine, with the boiler, cylinder, etc in good condition. For particulars apply to Mr Burslem at Burton-upon-Trent, or Robert Staley at Newhall near Burton, where the engine may be seen.”

                  fire engine

                   

                  Was the fire engine perhaps connected with a foundry or a coal mine?

                  I noticed that Robert Staley was the witness at a 1755 marriage in Stapenhill between Barbara Burslem and Richard Daston the younger esquire. The other witness was signed Burslem Jnr.

                   

                  Looking for Robert Staley

                   

                  I assumed that once again, in the absence of the correct records, a similarly named and aged persons baptism had been added to the tree regardless of accuracy, so I looked through the Stapenhill/Newhall parish register images page by page. There were no Staleys in Newhall at all in the early 1700s, so it seemed that Robert did come from elsewhere and I expected to find the Staleys in a neighbouring parish. But I still didn’t find any Staleys.

                  I spoke to a couple of Staley descendants that I’d met during the family research. I met Carole via a DNA match some months previously and contacted her to ask about the Staleys in Elton. She also had Robert Staley born in Elton (indeed, there were many Staleys in Elton) but she didn’t have any documentation for his birth, and we decided to collaborate and try and find out more.

                  I couldn’t find the earlier Elton parish registers anywhere online, but eventually found the untranscribed microfiche images of the Bishops Transcripts for Elton.

                  via familysearch:
                  “In its most basic sense, a bishop’s transcript is a copy of a parish register. As bishop’s transcripts generally contain more or less the same information as parish registers, they are an invaluable resource when a parish register has been damaged, destroyed, or otherwise lost. Bishop’s transcripts are often of value even when parish registers exist, as priests often recorded either additional or different information in their transcripts than they did in the original registers.”

                   

                  Unfortunately there was a gap in the Bishops Transcripts between 1704 and 1711 ~ exactly where I needed to look. I subsequently found out that the Elton registers were incomplete as they had been damaged by fire.

                  I estimated Robert Staleys date of birth between 1710 and 1715. He died in 1795, and his son Daniel died in 1805: both of these wills were found online. Daniel married Mary Moon in Stapenhill in 1762, making a likely birth date for Daniel around 1740.

                  The marriage of Robert Staley (assuming this was Robert’s father) and Alice Maceland (or Marsland or Marsden, depending on how the parish clerk chose to spell it presumably) was in the Bishops Transcripts for Elton in 1704. They were married in Elton on 26th February. There followed the missing parish register pages and in all likelihood the records of the baptisms of their first children. No doubt Robert was one of them, probably the first male child.

                  (Incidentally, my grandfather’s Marshalls also came from Elton, a small Derbyshire village near Matlock.  The Staley’s are on my grandmothers Warren side.)

                  The parish register pages resume in 1711. One of the first entries was the baptism of Robert Staley in 1711, parents Thomas and Ann. This was surely the one we were looking for, and Roberts parents weren’t Robert and Alice.

                  But then in 1735 a marriage was recorded between Robert son of Robert Staley (and this was unusual, the father of the groom isn’t usually recorded on the parish register) and Elizabeth Milner. They were married on the 9th March 1735. We know that the Robert we were looking for married an Elizabeth, as her name was on the Stapenhill baptisms of their later children, including Joseph Staleys.  The 1735 marriage also fit with the assumed birth date of Daniel, circa 1740. A baptism was found for a Robert Staley in 1738 in the Elton registers, parents Robert and Elizabeth, as well as the baptism in 1736 for Mary, presumably their first child. Her burial is recorded the following year.

                  The marriage of Robert Staley and Elizabeth Milner in 1735:

                  rbt staley marriage 1735

                   

                  There were several other Staley couples of a similar age in Elton, perhaps brothers and cousins. It seemed that Thomas and Ann’s son Robert was a different Robert, and that the one we were looking for was prior to that and on the missing pages.

                  Even so, this doesn’t prove that it was Elizabeth Staleys great grandfather who was born in Elton, but no other birth or baptism for Robert Staley has been found. It doesn’t explain why the Staleys moved to Stapenhill either, although the Enclosures Act and the Industrial Revolution could have been factors.

                  The 18th century saw the rise of the Industrial Revolution and many renowned Derbyshire Industrialists emerged. They created the turning point from what was until then a largely rural economy, to the development of townships based on factory production methods.

                  The Marsden Connection

                  There are some possible clues in the records of the Marsden family.  Robert Staley married Alice Marsden (or Maceland or Marsland) in Elton in 1704.  Robert Staley is mentioned in the 1730 will of John Marsden senior,  of Baslow, Innkeeper (Peacock Inne & Whitlands Farm). He mentions his daughter Alice, wife of Robert Staley.

                  In a 1715 Marsden will there is an intriguing mention of an alias, which might explain the different spellings on various records for the name Marsden:  “MARSDEN alias MASLAND, Christopher – of Baslow, husbandman, 28 Dec 1714. son Robert MARSDEN alias MASLAND….” etc.

                  Some potential reasons for a move from one parish to another are explained in this history of the Marsden family, and indeed this could relate to Robert Staley as he married into the Marsden family and his wife was a beneficiary of a Marsden will.  The Chatsworth Estate, at various times, bought a number of farms in order to extend the park.

                  THE MARSDEN FAMILY
                  OXCLOSE AND PARKGATE
                  In the Parishes of
                  Baslow and Chatsworth

                  by
                  David Dalrymple-Smith

                  John Marsden (b1653) another son of Edmund (b1611) faired well. By the time he died in
                  1730 he was publican of the Peacock, the Inn on Church Lane now called the Cavendish
                  Hotel, and the farmer at “Whitlands”, almost certainly Bubnell Cliff Farm.”

                  “Coal mining was well known in the Chesterfield area. The coalfield extends as far as the
                  Gritstone edges, where thin seams outcrop especially in the Baslow area.”

                  “…the occupants were evicted from the farmland below Dobb Edge and
                  the ground carefully cleared of all traces of occupation and farming. Shelter belts were
                  planted especially along the Heathy Lea Brook. An imposing new drive was laid to the
                  Chatsworth House with the Lodges and “The Golden Gates” at its northern end….”

                  Although this particular event was later than any events relating to Robert Staley, it’s an indication of how farms and farmland disappeared, and a reason for families to move to another area:

                  “The Dukes of Devonshire (of Chatsworth)  were major figures in the aristocracy and the government of the
                  time. Such a position demanded a display of wealth and ostentation. The 6th Duke of
                  Devonshire, the Bachelor Duke, was not content with the Chatsworth he inherited in 1811,
                  and immediately started improvements. After major changes around Edensor, he turned his
                  attention at the north end of the Park. In 1820 plans were made extend the Park up to the
                  Baslow parish boundary. As this would involve the destruction of most of the Farm at
                  Oxclose, the farmer at the Higher House Samuel Marsden (b1755) was given the tenancy of
                  Ewe Close a large farm near Bakewell.
                  Plans were revised in 1824 when the Dukes of Devonshire and Rutland “Exchanged Lands”,
                  reputedly during a game of dice. Over 3300 acres were involved in several local parishes, of
                  which 1000 acres were in Baslow. In the deal Devonshire acquired the southeast corner of
                  Baslow Parish.
                  Part of the deal was Gibbet Moor, which was developed for “Sport”. The shelf of land
                  between Parkgate and Robin Hood and a few extra fields was left untouched. The rest,
                  between Dobb Edge and Baslow, was agricultural land with farms, fields and houses. It was
                  this last part that gave the Duke the opportunity to improve the Park beyond his earlier
                  expectations.”

                   

                  The 1795 will of Robert Staley.

                  Inriguingly, Robert included the children of his son Daniel Staley in his will, but omitted to leave anything to Daniel.  A perusal of Daniels 1808 will sheds some light on this:  Daniel left his property to his six reputed children with Elizabeth Moon, and his reputed daughter Mary Brearly. Daniels wife was Mary Moon, Elizabeths husband William Moons daughter.

                  The will of Robert Staley, 1795:

                  1795 will 2

                  1795 Rbt Staley will

                   

                  The 1805 will of Daniel Staley, Robert’s son:

                  This is the last will and testament of me Daniel Staley of the Township of Newhall in the parish of Stapenhill in the County of Derby, Farmer. I will and order all of my just debts, funeral and testamentary expenses to be fully paid and satisfied by my executors hereinafter named by and out of my personal estate as soon as conveniently may be after my decease.

                  I give, devise and bequeath to Humphrey Trafford Nadin of Church Gresely in the said County of Derby Esquire and John Wilkinson of Newhall aforesaid yeoman all my messuages, lands, tenements, hereditaments and real and personal estates to hold to them, their heirs, executors, administrators and assigns until Richard Moon the youngest of my reputed sons by Elizabeth Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years upon trust that they, my said trustees, (or the survivor of them, his heirs, executors, administrators or assigns), shall and do manage and carry on my farm at Newhall aforesaid and pay and apply the rents, issues and profits of all and every of my said real and personal estates in for and towards the support, maintenance and education of all my reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon until the said Richard Moon my youngest reputed son shall attain his said age of twenty one years and equally share and share and share alike.

                  And it is my will and desire that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall recruit and keep up the stock upon my farm as they in their discretion shall see occasion or think proper and that the same shall not be diminished. And in case any of my said reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon shall be married before my said reputed youngest son shall attain his age of twenty one years that then it is my will and desire that non of their husbands or wives shall come to my farm or be maintained there or have their abode there. That it is also my will and desire in case my reputed children or any of them shall not be steady to business but instead shall be wild and diminish the stock that then my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority in their discretion to sell and dispose of all or any part of my said personal estate and to put out the money arising from the sale thereof to interest and to pay and apply the interest thereof and also thereunto of the said real estate in for and towards the maintenance, education and support of all my said reputed children by the said
                  Elizabeth Moon as they my said trustees in their discretion that think proper until the said Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years.

                  Then I give to my grandson Daniel Staley the sum of ten pounds and to each and every of my sons and daughters namely Daniel Staley, Benjamin Staley, John Staley, William Staley, Elizabeth Dent and Sarah Orme and to my niece Ann Brearly the sum of five pounds apiece.

                  I give to my youngest reputed son Richard Moon one share in the Ashby Canal Navigation and I direct that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority to pay and apply all or any part of the fortune or legacy hereby intended for my youngest reputed son Richard Moon in placing him out to any trade, business or profession as they in their discretion shall think proper.
                  And I direct that to my said sons and daughters by my late wife and my said niece shall by wholly paid by my said reputed son Richard Moon out of the fortune herby given him. And it is my will and desire that my said reputed children shall deliver into the hands of my executors all the monies that shall arise from the carrying on of my business that is not wanted to carry on the same unto my acting executor and shall keep a just and true account of all disbursements and receipts of the said business and deliver up the same to my acting executor in order that there may not be any embezzlement or defraud amongst them and from and immediately after my said reputed youngest son Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years then I give, devise and bequeath all my real estate and all the residue and remainder of my personal estate of what nature and kind whatsoever and wheresoever unto and amongst all and every my said reputed sons and daughters namely William Moon, Thomas Moon, Joseph Moon, Richard Moon, Ann Moon, Margaret Moon and to my reputed daughter Mary Brearly to hold to them and their respective heirs, executors, administrator and assigns for ever according to the nature and tenure of the same estates respectively to take the same as tenants in common and not as joint tenants.

                  And lastly I nominate and appoint the said Humphrey Trafford Nadin and John Wilkinson executors of this my last will and testament and guardians of all my reputed children who are under age during their respective minorities hereby revoking all former and other wills by me heretofore made and declaring this only to be my last will.

                  In witness whereof I the said Daniel Staley the testator have to this my last will and testament set my hand and seal the eleventh day of March in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and five.

                   

                  #6290
                  TracyTracy
                  Participant

                    Leicestershire Blacksmiths

                    The Orgill’s of Measham led me further into Leicestershire as I traveled back in time.

                    I also realized I had uncovered a direct line of women and their mothers going back ten generations:

                    myself, Tracy Edwards 1957-
                    my mother Gillian Marshall 1933-
                    my grandmother Florence Warren 1906-1988
                    her mother and my great grandmother Florence Gretton 1881-1927
                    her mother Sarah Orgill 1840-1910
                    her mother Elizabeth Orgill 1803-1876
                    her mother Sarah Boss 1783-1847
                    her mother Elizabeth Page 1749-
                    her mother Mary Potter 1719-1780
                    and her mother and my 7x great grandmother Mary 1680-

                    You could say it leads us to the very heart of England, as these Leicestershire villages are as far from the coast as it’s possible to be. There are countless other maternal lines to follow, of course, but only one of mothers of mothers, and ours takes us to Leicestershire.

                    The blacksmiths

                    Sarah Boss was the daughter of Michael Boss 1755-1807, a blacksmith in Measham, and Elizabeth Page of nearby Hartshorn, just over the county border in Derbyshire.

                    An earlier Michael Boss, a blacksmith of Measham, died in 1772, and in his will he left the possession of the blacksmiths shop and all the working tools and a third of the household furniture to Michael, who he named as his nephew. He left his house in Appleby Magna to his wife Grace, and five pounds to his mother Jane Boss. As none of Michael and Grace’s children are mentioned in the will, perhaps it can be assumed that they were childless.

                    The will of Michael Boss, 1772, Measham:

                    Michael Boss 1772 will

                     

                    Michael Boss the uncle was born in Appleby Magna in 1724. His parents were Michael Boss of Nelson in the Thistles and Jane Peircivall of Appleby Magna, who were married in nearby Mancetter in 1720.

                    Information worth noting on the Appleby Magna website:

                    In 1752 the calendar in England was changed from the Julian Calendar to the Gregorian Calendar, as a result 11 days were famously “lost”. But for the recording of Church Registers another very significant change also took place, the start of the year was moved from March 25th to our more familiar January 1st.
                    Before 1752 the 1st day of each new year was March 25th, Lady Day (a significant date in the Christian calendar). The year number which we all now use for calculating ages didn’t change until March 25th. So, for example, the day after March 24th 1750 was March 25th 1751, and January 1743 followed December 1743.
                    This March to March recording can be seen very clearly in the Appleby Registers before 1752. Between 1752 and 1768 there appears slightly confused recording, so dates should be carefully checked. After 1768 the recording is more fully by the modern calendar year.

                    Michael Boss the uncle married Grace Cuthbert.  I haven’t yet found the birth or parents of Grace, but a blacksmith by the name of Edward Cuthbert is mentioned on an Appleby Magna history website:

                    An Eighteenth Century Blacksmith’s Shop in Little Appleby
                    by Alan Roberts

                    Cuthberts inventory

                    The inventory of Edward Cuthbert provides interesting information about the household possessions and living arrangements of an eighteenth century blacksmith. Edward Cuthbert (als. Cutboard) settled in Appleby after the Restoration to join the handful of blacksmiths already established in the parish, including the Wathews who were prominent horse traders. The blacksmiths may have all worked together in the same shop at one time. Edward and his wife Sarah recorded the baptisms of several of their children in the parish register. Somewhat sadly three of the boys named after their father all died either in infancy or as young children. Edward’s inventory which was drawn up in 1732, by which time he was probably a widower and his children had left home, suggests that they once occupied a comfortable two-storey house in Little Appleby with an attached workshop, well equipped with all the tools for repairing farm carts, ploughs and other implements, for shoeing horses and for general ironmongery. 

                    Edward Cuthbert born circa 1660, married Joane Tuvenet in 1684 in Swepston cum Snarestone , and died in Appleby in 1732. Tuvenet is a French name and suggests a Huguenot connection, but this isn’t our family, and indeed this Edward Cuthbert is not likely to be Grace’s father anyway.

                    Michael Boss and Elizabeth Page appear to have married twice: once in 1776, and once in 1779. Both of the documents exist and appear correct. Both marriages were by licence. They both mention Michael is a blacksmith.

                    Their first daughter, Elizabeth, was baptized in February 1777, just nine months after the first wedding. It’s not known when she was born, however, and it’s possible that the marriage was a hasty one. But why marry again three years later?

                    But Michael Boss and Elizabeth Page did not marry twice.

                    Elizabeth Page from Smisby was born in 1752 and married Michael Boss on the 5th of May 1776 in Measham. On the marriage licence allegations and bonds, Michael is a bachelor.

                    Baby Elizabeth was baptised in Measham on the 9th February 1777. Mother Elizabeth died on the 18th February 1777, also in Measham.

                    In 1779 Michael Boss married another Elizabeth Page! She was born in 1749 in Hartshorn, and Michael is a widower on the marriage licence allegations and bonds.

                    Hartshorn and Smisby are neighbouring villages, hence the confusion.  But a closer look at the documents available revealed the clues.  Both Elizabeth Pages were literate, and indeed their signatures on the marriage registers are different:

                    Marriage of Michael Boss and Elizabeth Page of Smisby in 1776:

                    Elizabeth Page 1776

                     

                    Marriage of Michael Boss and Elizabeth Page of Harsthorn in 1779:

                    Elizabeth Page 1779

                     

                    Not only did Michael Boss marry two women both called Elizabeth Page but he had an unusual start in life as well. His uncle Michael Boss left him the blacksmith business and a third of his furniture. This was all in the will. But which of Uncle Michaels brothers was nephew Michaels father?

                    The only Michael Boss born at the right time was in 1750 in Edingale, Staffordshire, about eight miles from Appleby Magna. His parents were Thomas Boss and Ann Parker, married in Edingale in 1747.  Thomas died in August 1750, and his son Michael was baptised in the December, posthumus son of Thomas and his widow Ann. Both entries are on the same page of the register.

                    1750 posthumus

                     

                    Ann Boss, the young widow, married again. But perhaps Michael and his brother went to live with their childless uncle and aunt, Michael Boss and Grace Cuthbert.

                    The great grandfather of Michael Boss (the Measham blacksmith born in 1850) was also Michael Boss, probably born in the 1660s. He died in Newton Regis in Warwickshire in 1724, four years after his son (also Michael Boss born 1693) married Jane Peircivall.  The entry on the parish register states that Michael Boss was buried ye 13th Affadavit made.

                    I had not seen affadavit made on a parish register before, and this relates to the The Burying in Woollen Acts 1666–80.  According to Wikipedia:

                     “Acts of the Parliament of England which required the dead, except plague victims and the destitute, to be buried in pure English woollen shrouds to the exclusion of any foreign textiles.  It was a requirement that an affidavit be sworn in front of a Justice of the Peace (usually by a relative of the deceased), confirming burial in wool, with the punishment of a £5 fee for noncompliance. Burial entries in parish registers were marked with the word “affidavit” or its equivalent to confirm that affidavit had been sworn; it would be marked “naked” for those too poor to afford the woollen shroud.  The legislation was in force until 1814, but was generally ignored after 1770.”

                    Michael Boss buried 1724 “Affadavit made”:

                    Michael Boss affadavit 1724

                     

                     

                     

                    Elizabeth Page‘s father was William Page 1717-1783, a wheelwright in Hartshorn.  (The father of the first wife Elizabeth was also William Page, but he was a husbandman in Smisby born in 1714. William Page, the father of the second wife, was born in Nailstone, Leicestershire, in 1717. His place of residence on his marriage to Mary Potter was spelled Nelson.)

                    Her mother was Mary Potter 1719- of nearby Coleorton.  Mary’s father, Richard Potter 1677-1731, was a blacksmith in Coleorton.

                    A page of the will of Richard Potter 1731:

                    Richard Potter 1731

                     

                    Richard Potter states: “I will and order that my son Thomas Potter shall after my decease have one shilling paid to him and no more.”  As he left £50 to each of his daughters, one can’t help but wonder what Thomas did to displease his father.

                    Richard stipulated that his son Thomas should have one shilling paid to him and not more, for several good considerations, and left “the house and ground lying in the parish of Whittwick in a place called the Long Lane to my wife Mary Potter to dispose of as she shall think proper.”

                    His son Richard inherited the blacksmith business:  “I will and order that my son Richard Potter shall live and be with his mother and serve her duly and truly in the business of a blacksmith, and obey and serve her in all lawful commands six years after my decease, and then I give to him and his heirs…. my house and grounds Coulson House in the Liberty of Thringstone”

                    Richard wanted his son John to be a blacksmith too: “I will and order that my wife bring up my son John Potter at home with her and teach or cause him to be taught the trade of a blacksmith and that he shall serve her duly and truly seven years after my decease after the manner of an apprentice and at the death of his mother I give him that house and shop and building and the ground belonging to it which I now dwell in to him and his heirs forever.”

                    To his daughters Margrett and Mary Potter, upon their reaching the age of one and twenty, or the day after their marriage, he leaves £50 each. All the rest of his goods are left to his loving wife Mary.

                     

                    An inventory of the belongings of Richard Potter, 1731:

                    Richard Potter inventory

                     

                    Richard Potters father was also named Richard Potter 1649-1719, and he too was a blacksmith.

                    Richard Potter of Coleorton in the county of Leicester, blacksmith, stated in his will:  “I give to my son and daughter Thomas and Sarah Potter the possession of my house and grounds.”

                    He leaves ten pounds each to his daughters Jane and Alice, to his son Francis he gives five pounds, and five shillings to his son Richard. Sons Joseph and William also receive five shillings each. To his daughter Mary, wife of Edward Burton, and her daughter Elizabeth, he gives five shillings each. The rest of his good, chattels and wordly substance he leaves equally between his son and daugter Thomas and Sarah. As there is no mention of his wife, it’s assumed that she predeceased him.

                    The will of Richard Potter, 1719:

                    Richard Potter 1719

                     

                    Richard Potter’s (1649-1719) parents were William Potter and Alse Huldin, both born in the early 1600s.  They were married in 1646 at Breedon on the Hill, Leicestershire.  The name Huldin appears to originate in Finland.

                    William Potter was a blacksmith. In the 1659 parish registers of Breedon on the Hill, William Potter of Breedon blacksmith buryed the 14th July.

                    #6281
                    TracyTracy
                    Participant

                      The Measham Thatchers

                      Orgills, Finches and Wards

                      Measham is a large village in north west Leicestershire, England, near the Derbyshire, Staffordshire and Warwickshire boundaries. Our family has a penchant for border straddling, and the Orgill’s of Measham take this a step further living on the boundaries of four counties.  Historically it was in an exclave of Derbyshire absorbed into Leicestershire in 1897, so once again we have two sets of county records to search.

                      ORGILL

                      Richard Gretton, the baker of Swadlincote and my great grandmother Florence Nightingale Grettons’ father, married Sarah Orgill (1840-1910) in 1861.

                      (Incidentally, Florence Nightingale Warren nee Gretton’s first child Hildred born in 1900 had the middle name Orgill. Florence’s brother John Orgill Gretton emigrated to USA.)

                      When they first married, they lived with Sarah’s widowed mother Elizabeth in Measham.  Elizabeth Orgill is listed on the 1861 census as a farmer of two acres.

                      Sarah Orgill’s father Matthew Orgill (1798-1859) was a thatcher, as was his father Matthew Orgill (1771-1852).

                      Matthew Orgill the elder left his property to his son Henry:

                      Matthew Orgills will

                       

                      Sarah’s mother Elizabeth (1803-1876) was also an Orgill before her marriage to Matthew.

                      According to Pigot & Co’s Commercial Directory for Derbyshire, in Measham in 1835 Elizabeth Orgill was a straw bonnet maker, an ideal occupation for a thatchers wife.

                      Matthew Orgill, thatcher, is listed in White’s directory in 1857, and other Orgill’s are mentioned in Measham:

                      Mary Orgill, straw hat maker; Henry Orgill, grocer; Daniel Orgill, painter; another Matthew Orgill is a coal merchant and wheelwright. Likewise a number of Orgill’s are listed in the directories for Measham in the subsequent years, as farmers, plumbers, painters, grocers, thatchers, wheelwrights, coal merchants and straw bonnet makers.

                       

                      Matthew and Elizabeth Orgill, Measham Baptist church:

                      Orgill grave

                       

                      According to a history of thatching, for every six or seven thatchers appearing in the 1851 census there are now less than one.  Another interesting fact in the history of thatched roofs (via thatchinginfo dot com):

                      The Watling Street Divide…
                      The biggest dividing line of all, that between the angular thatching of the Northern and Eastern traditions and the rounded Southern style, still roughly follows a very ancient line; the northern section of the old Roman road of Watling Street, the modern A5. Seemingly of little significance today; this was once the border between two peoples. Agreed in the peace treaty, between the Saxon King Alfred and Guthrum, the Danish Viking leader; over eleven centuries ago.
                      After making their peace, various Viking armies settled down, to the north and east of the old road; firstly, in what was known as The Danelaw and later in Norse kingdoms, based in York. They quickly formed a class of farmers and peasants. Although the Saxon kings soon regained this area; these people stayed put. Their influence is still seen, for example, in the widespread use of boarded gable ends, so common in Danish thatching.
                      Over time, the Southern and Northern traditions have slipped across the old road, by a few miles either way. But even today, travelling across the old highway will often bring the differing thatching traditions quickly into view.

                      Pear Tree Cottage, Bosworth Road, Measham. 1900.  Matthew Orgill was a thatcher living on Bosworth road.

                      Bosworth road

                       

                      FINCH

                      Matthew the elder married Frances Finch 1771-1848, also of Measham.  On the 1851 census Matthew is an 80 year old thatcher living with his daughter Mary and her husband Samuel Piner, a coal miner.

                      Henry Finch 1743- and Mary Dennis 1749- , both of Measham, were Frances parents.  Henry’s father was also Henry Finch, born in 1707 in Measham, and he married Frances Ward, also born in 1707, and also from Measham.

                      WARD

                       

                      The ancient boundary between the kingdom of Mercia and the Danelaw

                      I didn’t find much information on the history of Measham, but I did find a great deal of ancient history on the nearby village of Appleby Magna, two miles away.  The parish records indicate that the Ward and Finch branches of our family date back to the 1500’s in the village, and we can assume that the ancient history of the neighbouring village would be relevant to our history.

                      There is evidence of human settlement in Appleby from the early Neolithic period, 6,000 years ago, and there are also Iron Age and Bronze Age sites in the vicinity.  There is evidence of further activity within the village during the Roman period, including evidence of a villa or farm and a temple.  Appleby is near three known Roman roads: Watling Street, 10 miles south of the village; Bath Lane, 5 miles north of the village; and Salt Street, which forms the parish’s south boundary.

                      But it is the Scandinavian invasions that are particularly intriguing, with regard to my 58% Scandinavian DNA (and virtually 100% Midlands England ancestry). Repton is 13 miles from Measham. In the early 10th century Chilcote, Measham and Willesley were part of the royal Derbyshire estate of Repton.

                      The arrival of Scandinavian invaders in the second half of the ninth century caused widespread havoc throughout northern England. By the AD 870s the Danish army was occupying Mercia and it spent the winter of 873-74 at Repton, the headquarters of the Mercian kings. The events are recorded in detail in the Peterborough manuscript of the Anglo-Saxon Chronicles…

                      Although the Danes held power for only 40 years, a strong, even subversive, Danish element remained in the population for many years to come. 

                      A Scandinavian influence may also be detected among the field names of the parish. Although many fields have relatively modern names, some clearly have elements which reach back to the time of Danish incursion and control.

                      The Borders:

                      The name ‘aeppel byg’ is given in the will of Wulfic Spot of AD 1004……………..The decision at Domesday to include this land in Derbyshire, as one of Burton Abbey’s Derbyshire manors, resulted in the division of the village of Appleby Magna between the counties of Leicester and Derby for the next 800 years

                      Richard Dunmore’s Appleby Magma website.

                      This division of Appleby between Leicestershire and Derbyshire persisted from Domesday until 1897, when the recently created county councils (1889) simplified the administration of many villages in this area by a radical realignment of the boundary:

                      Appleby

                       

                      I would appear that our family not only straddle county borders, but straddle ancient kingdom borders as well.  This particular branch of the family (we assume, given the absence of written records that far back) were living on the edge of the Danelaw and a strong element of the Danes survives to this day in my DNA.

                       

                      #6280

                      I started reading a book. In fact I started reading it three weeks ago, and have read the first page of the preface every night and fallen asleep. But my neck aches from doing too much gardening so I went back to bed to read this morning. I still fell asleep six times but at least I finished the preface. It’s the story of the family , initiated by the family collection of netsuke (whatever that is. Tiny Japanese carvings) But this is what stopped me reading and made me think (and then fall asleep each time I re read it)

                      “And I’m not entitled to nostalgia about all that lost wealth and glamour from a century ago. And I am not interested in thin. I want to know what the relationship has been between this wooden object that I am rolling between my fingers – hard and tricky and Japanese – and where it has been. I want to be able to reach to the handle of the door and turn it and feel it open. I want to walk into each room where this object has lived, to feel the volume of the space, to know what pictures were on the walls, how the light fell from the windows. And I want to know whose hands it has been in, and what they felt about it and thought about it – if they thought about it. I want to know what it has witnessed.” ― Edmund de Waal, The Hare With Amber Eyes: A Family’s Century of Art and Loss

                      And I felt almost bereft that none of the records tell me which way the light fell in through the windows.

                      I know who lived in the house in which years, but I don’t know who sat in the sun streaming through the window and which painting upon the wall they looked at and what the material was that covered the chair they sat on.

                      Were his clothes confortable (or hers, likely not), did he have an old favourite pair of trousers that his mother hated?

                      There is one house in particular that I keep coming back to. Like I got on the Housley train at Smalley and I can’t get off. Kidsley Grange Farm, they turned it into a nursing home and built extensions, and now it’s for sale for five hundred thousand pounds. But is the ghost still under the back stairs? Is there still a stain somewhere when a carafe of port was dropped?

                      Did Anns writing desk survive? Does someone have that, polished, with a vase of spring tulips on it? (on a mat of course so it doesn’t make a ring, despite that there are layers of beeswaxed rings already)

                      Does the desk remember the letters, the weight of a forearm or elbow, perhaps a smeared teardrop, or a comsumptive cough stain?

                      Is there perhaps a folded bit of paper or card that propped an uneven leg that fell through the floorboards that might tear into little squares if you found it and opened it, and would it be a rough draft of a letter never sent, or just a receipt for five head of cattle the summer before?

                      Did he hate the curtain material, or not even think of it? Did he love the house, or want to get away to see something new ~ or both?

                      Did he have a favourite cup, a favourite food, did he hate liver or cabbage?

                      Did he like his image when the photograph came from the studio or did he think it made his nose look big or his hair too thin, or did he wish he’d worn his other waistcoat?

                      Did he love his wife so much he couldn’t bear to see her dying, was it neglect or was it the unbearableness of it all that made him go away and drink?

                      Did the sun slanting in through the dormer window of his tiny attic room where he lodged remind him of ~ well no perhaps he was never in the room in daylight hours at all. Work all day and pub all night, keeping busy working hard and drinking hard and perhaps laughing hard, and maybe he only thought of it all on Sunday mornings.

                      So many deaths, one after another, his father, his wife, his brother, his sister, and another and another, all the coughing, all the debility. Perhaps he never understood why he lived and they did not, what kind of justice was there in that?

                      Did he take a souvenir or two with him, a handkerchief or a shawl perhaps, tucked away at the bottom of a battered leather bag that had his 3 shirts and 2 waistcoats in and a spare cap,something embroidered perhaps.

                      The quote in that book started me off with the light coming in the window and the need to know the simplest things, something nobody ever wrote in a letter, maybe never even mentioned to anyone.

                      Light coming in windows. I remeber when I was a teenager I had a day off sick and spent the whole day laying on the couch in a big window with the winter sun on my face all day, and I read Bonjour Tristesse in one sitting, and I’ll never forget that afternoon.  I don’t remember much about that book, but I remember being transported. But at the same time as being present in that sunny window.

                      “Stories and objects share something, a patina…Perhaps patina is a process of rubbing back so that the essential is revealed…But it also seems additive, in the way that a piece of oak furniture gains over years and years of polishing.”

                      “How objects are handed on is all about story-telling. I am giving you this because I love you. Or because it was given to me. Because I bought it somewhere special. Because you will care for it. Because it will complicate your life. Because it will make someone else envious. There is no easy story in legacy. What is remembered and what is forgotten? There can be a chain of forgetting, the rubbing away of previous ownership as much as the slow accretion of stories. What is being passed on to me with all these small Japanese objects?”

                      “There are things in this world that the children hear, but whose sounds oscillate below an adult’s sense of pitch.”

                      What did the children hear?

                      #6268
                      TracyTracy
                      Participant

                        From Tanganyika with Love

                        continued part 9

                        With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                        Lyamungu 3rd January 1945

                        Dearest Family.

                        We had a novel Christmas this year. We decided to avoid the expense of
                        entertaining and being entertained at Lyamungu, and went off to spend Christmas
                        camping in a forest on the Western slopes of Kilimanjaro. George decided to combine
                        business with pleasure and in this way we were able to use Government transport.
                        We set out the day before Christmas day and drove along the road which skirts
                        the slopes of Kilimanjaro and first visited a beautiful farm where Philip Teare, the ex
                        Game Warden, and his wife Mary are staying. We had afternoon tea with them and then
                        drove on in to the natural forest above the estate and pitched our tent beside a small
                        clear mountain stream. We decorated the tent with paper streamers and a few small
                        balloons and John found a small tree of the traditional shape which we decorated where
                        it stood with tinsel and small ornaments.

                        We put our beer, cool drinks for the children and bottles of fresh milk from Simba
                        Estate, in the stream and on Christmas morning they were as cold as if they had been in
                        the refrigerator all night. There were not many presents for the children, there never are,
                        but they do not seem to mind and are well satisfied with a couple of balloons apiece,
                        sweets, tin whistles and a book each.

                        George entertain the children before breakfast. He can make a magical thing out
                        of the most ordinary balloon. The children watched entranced as he drew on his pipe
                        and then blew the smoke into the balloon. He then pinched the neck of the balloon
                        between thumb and forefinger and released the smoke in little puffs. Occasionally the
                        balloon ejected a perfect smoke ring and the forest rang with shouts of “Do it again
                        Daddy.” Another trick was to blow up the balloon to maximum size and then twist the
                        neck tightly before releasing. Before subsiding the balloon darted about in a crazy
                        fashion causing great hilarity. Such fun, at the cost of a few pence.

                        After breakfast George went off to fish for trout. John and Jim decided that they
                        also wished to fish so we made rods out of sticks and string and bent pins and they
                        fished happily, but of course quite unsuccessfully, for hours. Both of course fell into the
                        stream and got soaked, but I was prepared for this, and the little stream was so shallow
                        that they could not come to any harm. Henry played happily in the sand and I had a
                        most peaceful morning.

                        Hamisi roasted a chicken in a pot over the camp fire and the jelly set beautifully in the
                        stream. So we had grilled trout and chicken for our Christmas dinner. I had of course
                        taken an iced cake for the occasion and, all in all, it was a very successful Christmas day.
                        On Boxing day we drove down to the plains where George was to investigate a
                        report of game poaching near the Ngassari Furrow. This is a very long ditch which has
                        been dug by the Government for watering the Masai stock in the area. It is also used by
                        game and we saw herds of zebra and wildebeest, and some Grant’s Gazelle and
                        giraffe, all comparatively tame. At one point a small herd of zebra raced beside the lorry
                        apparently enjoying the fun of a gallop. They were all sleek and fat and looked wild and
                        beautiful in action.

                        We camped a considerable distance from the water but this precaution did not
                        save us from the mosquitoes which launched a vicious attack on us after sunset, so that
                        we took to our beds unusually early. They were on the job again when we got up at
                        sunrise so I was very glad when we were once more on our way home.

                        “I like Christmas safari. Much nicer that silly old party,” said John. I agree but I think
                        it is time that our children learned to play happily with others. There are no other young
                        children at Lyamungu though there are two older boys and a girl who go to boarding
                        school in Nairobi.

                        On New Years Day two Army Officers from the military camp at Moshi, came for
                        tea and to talk game hunting with George. I think they rather enjoy visiting a home and
                        seeing children and pets around.

                        Eleanor.

                        Lyamungu 14 May 1945

                        Dearest Family.

                        So the war in Europe is over at last. It is such marvellous news that I can hardly
                        believe it. To think that as soon as George can get leave we will go to England and
                        bring Ann and George home with us to Tanganyika. When we know when this leave can
                        be arranged we will want Kate to join us here as of course she must go with us to
                        England to meet George’s family. She has become so much a part of your lives that I
                        know it will be a wrench for you to give her up but I know that you will all be happy to
                        think that soon our family will be reunited.

                        The V.E. celebrations passed off quietly here. We all went to Moshi to see the
                        Victory Parade of the King’s African Rifles and in the evening we went to a celebration
                        dinner at the Game Warden’s house. Besides ourselves the Moores had invited the
                        Commanding Officer from Moshi and a junior officer. We had a very good dinner and
                        many toasts including one to Mrs Moore’s brother, Oliver Milton who is fighting in Burma
                        and has recently been awarded the Military Cross.

                        There was also a celebration party for the children in the grounds of the Moshi
                        Club. Such a spread! I think John and Jim sampled everything. We mothers were
                        having our tea separately and a friend laughingly told me to turn around and have a look.
                        I did, and saw the long tea tables now deserted by all the children but my two sons who
                        were still eating steadily, and finding the party more exciting than the game of Musical
                        Bumps into which all the other children had entered with enthusiasm.

                        There was also an extremely good puppet show put on by the Italian prisoners
                        of war from the camp at Moshi. They had made all the puppets which included well
                        loved characters like Snow White and the Seven Dwarfs and the Babes in the Wood as
                        well as more sophisticated ones like an irritable pianist and a would be prima donna. The
                        most popular puppets with the children were a native askari and his family – a very
                        happy little scene. I have never before seen a puppet show and was as entranced as
                        the children. It is amazing what clever manipulation and lighting can do. I believe that the
                        Italians mean to take their puppets to Nairobi and am glad to think that there, they will
                        have larger audiences to appreciate their art.

                        George has just come in, and I paused in my writing to ask him for the hundredth
                        time when he thinks we will get leave. He says I must be patient because it may be a
                        year before our turn comes. Shipping will be disorganised for months to come and we
                        cannot expect priority simply because we have been separated so long from our
                        children. The same situation applies to scores of other Government Officials.
                        I have decided to write the story of my childhood in South Africa and about our
                        life together in Tanganyika up to the time Ann and George left the country. I know you
                        will have told Kate these stories, but Ann and George were so very little when they left
                        home that I fear that they cannot remember much.

                        My Mother-in-law will have told them about their father but she can tell them little
                        about me. I shall send them one chapter of my story each month in the hope that they
                        may be interested and not feel that I am a stranger when at last we meet again.

                        Eleanor.

                        Lyamungu 19th September 1945

                        Dearest Family.

                        In a months time we will be saying good-bye to Lyamungu. George is to be
                        transferred to Mbeya and I am delighted, not only as I look upon Mbeya as home, but
                        because there is now a primary school there which John can attend. I feel he will make
                        much better progress in his lessons when he realises that all children of his age attend
                        school. At present he is putting up a strong resistance to learning to read and spell, but
                        he writes very neatly, does his sums accurately and shows a real talent for drawing. If
                        only he had the will to learn I feel he would do very well.

                        Jim now just four, is too young for lessons but too intelligent to be interested in
                        the ayah’s attempts at entertainment. Yes I’ve had to engage a native girl to look after
                        Henry from 9 am to 12.30 when I supervise John’s Correspondence Course. She is
                        clean and amiable, but like most African women she has no initiative at all when it comes
                        to entertaining children. Most African men and youths are good at this.

                        I don’t regret our stay at Lyamungu. It is a beautiful spot and the change to the
                        cooler climate after the heat of Morogoro has been good for all the children. John is still
                        tall for his age but not so thin as he was and much less pale. He is a handsome little lad
                        with his large brown eyes in striking contrast to his fair hair. He is wary of strangers but
                        very observant and quite uncanny in the way he sums up people. He seldom gets up
                        to mischief but I have a feeling he eggs Jim on. Not that Jim needs egging.

                        Jim has an absolute flair for mischief but it is all done in such an artless manner that
                        it is not easy to punish him. He is a very sturdy child with a cap of almost black silky hair,
                        eyes brown, like mine, and a large mouth which is quick to smile and show most beautiful
                        white and even teeth. He is most popular with all the native servants and the Game
                        Scouts. The servants call Jim, ‘Bwana Tembo’ (Mr Elephant) because of his sturdy
                        build.

                        Henry, now nearly two years old, is quite different from the other two in
                        appearance. He is fair complexioned and fair haired like Ann and Kate, with large, black
                        lashed, light grey eyes. He is a good child, not so merry as Jim was at his age, nor as
                        shy as John was. He seldom cries, does not care to be cuddled and is independent and
                        strong willed. The servants call Henry, ‘Bwana Ndizi’ (Mr Banana) because he has an
                        inexhaustible appetite for this fruit. Fortunately they are very inexpensive here. We buy
                        an entire bunch which hangs from a beam on the back verandah, and pluck off the
                        bananas as they ripen. This way there is no waste and the fruit never gets bruised as it
                        does in greengrocers shops in South Africa. Our three boys make a delightful and
                        interesting trio and I do wish you could see them for yourselves.

                        We are delighted with the really beautiful photograph of Kate. She is an
                        extraordinarily pretty child and looks so happy and healthy and a great credit to you.
                        Now that we will be living in Mbeya with a school on the doorstep I hope that we will
                        soon be able to arrange for her return home.

                        Eleanor.

                        c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 30th October 1945

                        Dearest Family.

                        How nice to be able to write c/o Game Dept. Mbeya at the head of my letters.
                        We arrived here safely after a rather tiresome journey and are installed in a tiny house on
                        the edge of the township.

                        We left Lyamungu early on the morning of the 22nd. Most of our goods had
                        been packed on the big Ford lorry the previous evening, but there were the usual
                        delays and farewells. Of our servants, only the cook, Hamisi, accompanied us to
                        Mbeya. Japhet, Tovelo and the ayah had to be paid off and largesse handed out.
                        Tovelo’s granny had come, bringing a gift of bananas, and she also brought her little
                        granddaughter to present a bunch of flowers. The child’s little scolded behind is now
                        completely healed. Gifts had to be found for them too.

                        At last we were all aboard and what a squash it was! Our few pieces of furniture
                        and packing cases and trunks, the cook, his wife, the driver and the turney boy, who
                        were to take the truck back to Lyamungu, and all their bits and pieces, bunches of
                        bananas and Fanny the dog were all crammed into the body of the lorry. George, the
                        children and I were jammed together in the cab. Before we left George looked
                        dubiously at the tyres which were very worn and said gloomily that he thought it most
                        unlikely that we would make our destination, Dodoma.

                        Too true! Shortly after midday, near Kwakachinja, we blew a back tyre and there
                        was a tedious delay in the heat whilst the wheel was changed. We were now without a
                        spare tyre and George said that he would not risk taking the Ford further than Babati,
                        which is less than half way to Dodoma. He drove very slowly and cautiously to Babati
                        where he arranged with Sher Mohammed, an Indian trader, for a lorry to take us to
                        Dodoma the next morning.

                        It had been our intention to spend the night at the furnished Government
                        Resthouse at Babati but when we got there we found that it was already occupied by
                        several District Officers who had assembled for a conference. So, feeling rather
                        disgruntled, we all piled back into the lorry and drove on to a place called Bereku where
                        we spent an uncomfortable night in a tumbledown hut.

                        Before dawn next morning Sher Mohammed’s lorry drove up, and there was a
                        scramble to dress by the light of a storm lamp. The lorry was a very dilapidated one and
                        there was already a native woman passenger in the cab. I felt so tired after an almost
                        sleepless night that I decided to sit between the driver and this woman with the sleeping
                        Henry on my knee. It was as well I did, because I soon found myself dosing off and
                        drooping over towards the woman. Had she not been there I might easily have fallen
                        out as the battered cab had no door. However I was alert enough when daylight came
                        and changed places with the woman to our mutual relief. She was now able to converse
                        with the African driver and I was able to enjoy the scenery and the fresh air!
                        George, John and Jim were less comfortable. They sat in the lorry behind the
                        cab hemmed in by packing cases. As the lorry was an open one the sun beat down
                        unmercifully upon them until George, ever resourceful, moved a table to the front of the
                        truck. The two boys crouched under this and so got shelter from the sun but they still had
                        to endure the dust. Fanny complicated things by getting car sick and with one thing and
                        another we were all jolly glad to get to Dodoma.

                        We spent the night at the Dodoma Hotel and after hot baths, a good meal and a
                        good nights rest we cheerfully boarded a bus of the Tanganyika Bus Service next
                        morning to continue our journey to Mbeya. The rest of the journey was uneventful. We slept two nights on the road, the first at Iringa Hotel and the second at Chimala. We
                        reached Mbeya on the 27th.

                        I was rather taken aback when I first saw the little house which has been allocated
                        to us. I had become accustomed to the spacious houses we had in Morogoro and
                        Lyamungu. However though the house is tiny it is secluded and has a long garden
                        sloping down to the road in front and another long strip sloping up behind. The front
                        garden is shaded by several large cypress and eucalyptus trees but the garden behind
                        the house has no shade and consists mainly of humpy beds planted with hundreds of
                        carnations sadly in need of debudding. I believe that the previous Game Ranger’s wife
                        cultivated the carnations and, by selling them, raised money for War Funds.
                        Like our own first home, this little house is built of sun dried brick. Its original
                        owners were Germans. It is now rented to the Government by the Custodian of Enemy
                        Property, and George has his office in another ex German house.

                        This afternoon we drove to the school to arrange about enrolling John there. The
                        school is about four miles out of town. It was built by the German settlers in the late
                        1930’s and they were justifiably proud of it. It consists of a great assembly hall and
                        classrooms in one block and there are several attractive single storied dormitories. This
                        school was taken over by the Government when the Germans were interned on the
                        outbreak of war and many improvements have been made to the original buildings. The
                        school certainly looks very attractive now with its grassed playing fields and its lawns and
                        bright flower beds.

                        The Union Jack flies from a tall flagpole in front of the Hall and all traces of the
                        schools German origin have been firmly erased. We met the Headmaster, Mr
                        Wallington, and his wife and some members of the staff. The school is co-educational
                        and caters for children from the age of seven to standard six. The leaving age is elastic
                        owing to the fact that many Tanganyika children started school very late because of lack
                        of educational facilities in this country.

                        The married members of the staff have their own cottages in the grounds. The
                        Matrons have quarters attached to the dormitories for which they are responsible. I felt
                        most enthusiastic about the school until I discovered that the Headmaster is adamant
                        upon one subject. He utterly refuses to take any day pupils at the school. So now our
                        poor reserved Johnny will have to adjust himself to boarding school life.
                        We have arranged that he will start school on November 5th and I shall be very
                        busy trying to assemble his school uniform at short notice. The clothing list is sensible.
                        Boys wear khaki shirts and shorts on weekdays with knitted scarlet jerseys when the
                        weather is cold. On Sundays they wear grey flannel shorts and blazers with the silver
                        and scarlet school tie.

                        Mbeya looks dusty, brown and dry after the lush evergreen vegetation of
                        Lyamungu, but I prefer this drier climate and there are still mountains to please the eye.
                        In fact the lower slopes of Lolesa Mountain rise at the upper end of our garden.

                        Eleanor.

                        c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 21st November 1945

                        Dearest Family.

                        We’re quite settled in now and I have got the little house fixed up to my
                        satisfaction. I have engaged a rather uncouth looking houseboy but he is strong and
                        capable and now that I am not tied down in the mornings by John’s lessons I am able to
                        go out occasionally in the mornings and take Jim and Henry to play with other children.
                        They do not show any great enthusiasm but are not shy by nature as John is.
                        I have had a good deal of heartache over putting John to boarding school. It
                        would have been different had he been used to the company of children outside his
                        own family, or if he had even known one child there. However he seems to be adjusting
                        himself to the life, though slowly. At least he looks well and tidy and I am quite sure that
                        he is well looked after.

                        I must confess that when the time came for John to go to school I simply did not
                        have the courage to take him and he went alone with George, looking so smart in his
                        new uniform – but his little face so bleak. The next day, Sunday, was visiting day but the
                        Headmaster suggested that we should give John time to settle down and not visit him
                        until Wednesday.

                        When we drove up to the school I spied John on the far side of the field walking
                        all alone. Instead of running up with glad greetings, as I had expected, he came almost
                        reluctently and had little to say. I asked him to show me his dormitory and classroom and
                        he did so politely as though I were a stranger. At last he volunteered some information.
                        “Mummy,” he said in an awed voice, Do you know on the night I came here they burnt a
                        man! They had a big fire and they burnt him.” After a blank moment the penny dropped.
                        Of course John had started school and November the fifth but it had never entered my
                        head to tell him about that infamous character, Guy Fawkes!

                        I asked John’s Matron how he had settled down. “Well”, she said thoughtfully,
                        John is very good and has not cried as many of the juniors do when they first come
                        here, but he seems to keep to himself all the time.” I went home very discouraged but
                        on the Sunday John came running up with another lad of about his own age.” This is my
                        friend Marks,” he announced proudly. I could have hugged Marks.

                        Mbeya is very different from the small settlement we knew in the early 1930’s.
                        Gone are all the colourful characters from the Lupa diggings for the alluvial claims are all
                        worked out now, gone also are our old friends the Menzies from the Pub and also most
                        of the Government Officials we used to know. Mbeya has lost its character of a frontier
                        township and has become almost suburban.

                        The social life revolves around two places, the Club and the school. The Club
                        which started out as a little two roomed building, has been expanded and the golf
                        course improved. There are also tennis courts and a good library considering the size of
                        the community. There are frequent parties and dances, though most of the club revenue
                        comes from Bar profits. The parties are relatively sober affairs compared with the parties
                        of the 1930’s.

                        The school provides entertainment of another kind. Both Mr and Mrs Wallington
                        are good amateur actors and I am told that they run an Amateur Dramatic Society. Every
                        Wednesday afternoon there is a hockey match at the school. Mbeya town versus a
                        mixed team of staff and scholars. The match attracts almost the whole European
                        population of Mbeya. Some go to play hockey, others to watch, and others to snatch
                        the opportunity to visit their children. I shall have to try to arrange a lift to school when
                        George is away on safari.

                        I have now met most of the local women and gladly renewed an old friendship
                        with Sheilagh Waring whom I knew two years ago at Morogoro. Sheilagh and I have
                        much in common, the same disregard for the trappings of civilisation, the same sense of
                        the ludicrous, and children. She has eight to our six and she has also been cut off by the
                        war from two of her children. Sheilagh looks too young and pretty to be the mother of so
                        large a family and is, in fact, several years younger than I am. her husband, Donald, is a
                        large quiet man who, as far as I can judge takes life seriously.

                        Our next door neighbours are the Bank Manager and his wife, a very pleasant
                        couple though we seldom meet. I have however had correspondence with the Bank
                        Manager. Early on Saturday afternoon their houseboy brought a note. It informed me
                        that my son was disturbing his rest by precipitating a heart attack. Was I aware that my
                        son was about 30 feet up in a tree and balanced on a twig? I ran out and,sure enough,
                        there was Jim, right at the top of the tallest eucalyptus tree. It would be the one with the
                        mound of stones at the bottom! You should have heard me fluting in my most
                        wheedling voice. “Sweets, Jimmy, come down slowly dear, I’ve some nice sweets for
                        you.”

                        I’ll bet that little story makes you smile. I remember how often you have told me
                        how, as a child, I used to make your hearts turn over because I had no fear of heights
                        and how I used to say, “But that is silly, I won’t fall.” I know now only too well, how you
                        must have felt.

                        Eleanor.

                        c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 14th January 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        I hope that by now you have my telegram to say that Kate got home safely
                        yesterday. It was wonderful to have her back and what a beautiful child she is! Kate
                        seems to have enjoyed the train journey with Miss Craig, in spite of the tears she tells
                        me she shed when she said good-bye to you. She also seems to have felt quite at
                        home with the Hopleys at Salisbury. She flew from Salisbury in a small Dove aircraft
                        and they had a smooth passage though Kate was a little airsick.

                        I was so excited about her home coming! This house is so tiny that I had to turn
                        out the little store room to make a bedroom for her. With a fresh coat of whitewash and
                        pretty sprigged curtains and matching bedspread, borrowed from Sheilagh Waring, the
                        tiny room looks most attractive. I had also iced a cake, made ice-cream and jelly and
                        bought crackers for the table so that Kate’s home coming tea could be a proper little
                        celebration.

                        I was pleased with my preparations and then, a few hours before the plane was
                        due, my crowned front tooth dropped out, peg and all! When my houseboy wants to
                        describe something very tatty, he calls it “Second-hand Kabisa.” Kabisa meaning
                        absolutely. That is an apt description of how I looked and felt. I decided to try some
                        emergency dentistry. I think you know our nearest dentist is at Dar es Salaam five
                        hundred miles away.

                        First I carefully dried the tooth and with a match stick covered the peg and base
                        with Durofix. I then took the infants rubber bulb enema, sucked up some heat from a
                        candle flame and pumped it into the cavity before filling that with Durofix. Then hopefully
                        I stuck the tooth in its former position and held it in place for several minutes. No good. I
                        sent the houseboy to a shop for Scotine and tried the whole process again. No good
                        either.

                        When George came home for lunch I appealed to him for advice. He jokingly
                        suggested that a maize seed jammed into the space would probably work, but when
                        he saw that I really was upset he produced some chewing gum and suggested that I
                        should try that . I did and that worked long enough for my first smile anyway.
                        George and the three boys went to meet Kate but I remained at home to
                        welcome her there. I was afraid that after all this time away Kate might be reluctant to
                        rejoin the family but she threw her arms around me and said “Oh Mummy,” We both
                        shed a few tears and then we both felt fine.

                        How gay Kate is, and what an infectious laugh she has! The boys follow her
                        around in admiration. John in fact asked me, “Is Kate a Princess?” When I said
                        “Goodness no, Johnny, she’s your sister,” he explained himself by saying, “Well, she
                        has such golden hair.” Kate was less complementary. When I tucked her in bed last night
                        she said, “Mummy, I didn’t expect my little brothers to be so yellow!” All three boys
                        have been taking a course of Atebrin, an anti-malarial drug which tinges skin and eyeballs
                        yellow.

                        So now our tiny house is bursting at its seams and how good it feels to have one
                        more child under our roof. We are booked to sail for England in May and when we return
                        we will have Ann and George home too. Then I shall feel really content.

                        Eleanor.

                        c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 2nd March 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        My life just now is uneventful but very busy. I am sewing hard and knitting fast to
                        try to get together some warm clothes for our leave in England. This is not a simple
                        matter because woollen materials are in short supply and very expensive, and now that
                        we have boarding school fees to pay for both Kate and John we have to budget very
                        carefully indeed.

                        Kate seems happy at school. She makes friends easily and seems to enjoy
                        communal life. John also seems reconciled to school now that Kate is there. He no
                        longer feels that he is the only exile in the family. He seems to rub along with the other
                        boys of his age and has a couple of close friends. Although Mbeya School is coeducational
                        the smaller boys and girls keep strictly apart. It is considered extremely
                        cissy to play with girls.

                        The local children are allowed to go home on Sundays after church and may bring
                        friends home with them for the day. Both John and Kate do this and Sunday is a very
                        busy day for me. The children come home in their Sunday best but bring play clothes to
                        change into. There is always a scramble to get them to bath and change again in time to
                        deliver them to the school by 6 o’clock.

                        When George is home we go out to the school for the morning service. This is
                        taken by the Headmaster Mr Wallington, and is very enjoyable. There is an excellent
                        school choir to lead the singing. The service is the Church of England one, but is
                        attended by children of all denominations, except the Roman Catholics. I don’t think that
                        more than half the children are British. A large proportion are Greeks, some as old as
                        sixteen, and about the same number are Afrikaners. There are Poles and non-Nazi
                        Germans, Swiss and a few American children.

                        All instruction is through the medium of English and it is amazing how soon all the
                        foreign children learn to chatter in English. George has been told that we will return to
                        Mbeya after our leave and for that I am very thankful as it means that we will still be living
                        near at hand when Jim and Henry start school. Because many of these children have to
                        travel many hundreds of miles to come to school, – Mbeya is a two day journey from the
                        railhead, – the school year is divided into two instead of the usual three terms. This
                        means that many of these children do not see their parents for months at a time. I think
                        this is a very sad state of affairs especially for the seven and eight year olds but the
                        Matrons assure me , that many children who live on isolated farms and stations are quite
                        reluctant to go home because they miss the companionship and the games and
                        entertainment that the school offers.

                        My only complaint about the life here is that I see far too little of George. He is
                        kept extremely busy on this range and is hardly at home except for a few days at the
                        months end when he has to be at his office to check up on the pay vouchers and the
                        issue of ammunition to the Scouts. George’s Range takes in the whole of the Southern
                        Province and the Southern half of the Western Province and extends to the border with
                        Northern Rhodesia and right across to Lake Tanganyika. This vast area is patrolled by
                        only 40 Game Scouts because the Department is at present badly under staffed, due
                        partly to the still acute shortage of rifles, but even more so to the extraordinary reluctance
                        which the Government shows to allocate adequate funds for the efficient running of the
                        Department.

                        The Game Scouts must see that the Game Laws are enforced, protect native
                        crops from raiding elephant, hippo and other game animals. Report disease amongst game and deal with stock raiding lions. By constantly going on safari and checking on
                        their work, George makes sure the range is run to his satisfaction. Most of the Game
                        Scouts are fine fellows but, considering they receive only meagre pay for dangerous
                        and exacting work, it is not surprising that occasionally a Scout is tempted into accepting
                        a bribe not to report a serious infringement of the Game Laws and there is, of course,
                        always the temptation to sell ivory illicitly to unscrupulous Indian and Arab traders.
                        Apart from supervising the running of the Range, George has two major jobs.
                        One is to supervise the running of the Game Free Area along the Rhodesia –
                        Tanganyika border, and the other to hunt down the man-eating lions which for years have
                        terrorised the Njombe District killing hundreds of Africans. Yes I know ‘hundreds’ sounds
                        fantastic, but this is perfectly true and one day, when the job is done and the official
                        report published I shall send it to you to prove it!

                        I hate to think of the Game Free Area and so does George. All the game from
                        buffalo to tiny duiker has been shot out in a wide belt extending nearly two hundred
                        miles along the Northern Rhodesia -Tanganyika border. There are three Europeans in
                        widely spaced camps who supervise this slaughter by African Game Guards. This
                        horrible measure is considered necessary by the Veterinary Departments of
                        Tanganyika, Rhodesia and South Africa, to prevent the cattle disease of Rinderpest
                        from spreading South.

                        When George is home however, we do relax and have fun. On the Saturday
                        before the school term started we took Kate and the boys up to the top fishing camp in
                        the Mporoto Mountains for her first attempt at trout fishing. There are three of these
                        camps built by the Mbeya Trout Association on the rivers which were first stocked with
                        the trout hatched on our farm at Mchewe. Of the three, the top camp is our favourite. The
                        scenery there is most glorious and reminds me strongly of the rivers of the Western
                        Cape which I so loved in my childhood.

                        The river, the Kawira, flows from the Rungwe Mountain through a narrow valley
                        with hills rising steeply on either side. The water runs swiftly over smooth stones and
                        sometimes only a foot or two below the level of the banks. It is sparkling and shallow,
                        but in places the water is deep and dark and the banks high. I had a busy day keeping
                        an eye on the boys, especially Jim, who twice climbed out on branches which overhung
                        deep water. “Mummy, I was only looking for trout!”

                        How those kids enjoyed the freedom of the camp after the comparative
                        restrictions of town. So did Fanny, she raced about on the hills like a mad dog chasing
                        imaginary rabbits and having the time of her life. To escape the noise and commotion
                        George had gone far upstream to fish and returned in the late afternoon with three good
                        sized trout and four smaller ones. Kate proudly showed George the two she had caught
                        with the assistance or our cook Hamisi. I fear they were caught in a rather unorthodox
                        manner but this I kept a secret from George who is a stickler for the orthodox in trout
                        fishing.

                        Eleanor.

                        Jacksdale England 24th June 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        Here we are all together at last in England. You cannot imagine how wonderful it
                        feels to have the whole Rushby family reunited. I find myself counting heads. Ann,
                        George, Kate, John, Jim, and Henry. All present and well. We had a very pleasant trip
                        on the old British India Ship Mantola. She was crowded with East Africans going home
                        for the first time since the war, many like us, eagerly looking forward to a reunion with their
                        children whom they had not seen for years. There was a great air of anticipation and
                        good humour but a little anxiety too.

                        “I do hope our children will be glad to see us,” said one, and went on to tell me
                        about a Doctor from Dar es Salaam who, after years of separation from his son had
                        recently gone to visit him at his school. The Doctor had alighted at the railway station
                        where he had arranged to meet his son. A tall youth approached him and said, very
                        politely, “Excuse me sir. Are you my Father?” Others told me of children who had
                        become so attached to their relatives in England that they gave their parents a very cool
                        reception. I began to feel apprehensive about Ann and George but fortunately had no
                        time to mope.

                        Oh, that washing and ironing for six! I shall remember for ever that steamy little
                        laundry in the heat of the Red Sea and queuing up for the ironing and the feeling of guilt
                        at the size of my bundle. We met many old friends amongst the passengers, and made
                        some new ones, so the voyage was a pleasant one, We did however have our
                        anxious moments.

                        John was the first to disappear and we had an anxious search for him. He was
                        quite surprised that we had been concerned. “I was just talking to my friend Chinky
                        Chinaman in his workshop.” Could John have called him that? Then, when I returned to
                        the cabin from dinner one night I found Henry swigging Owbridge’s Lung Tonic. He had
                        drunk half the bottle neat and the label said ‘five drops in water’. Luckily it did not harm
                        him.

                        Jim of course was forever risking his neck. George had forbidden him to climb on
                        the railings but he was forever doing things which no one had thought of forbidding him
                        to do, like hanging from the overhead pipes on the deck or standing on the sill of a
                        window and looking down at the well deck far below. An Officer found him doing this and
                        gave me the scolding.

                        Another day he climbed up on a derrick used for hoisting cargo. George,
                        oblivious to this was sitting on the hatch cover with other passengers reading a book. I
                        was in the wash house aft on the same deck when Kate rushed in and said, “Mummy
                        come and see Jim.” Before I had time to more than gape, the butcher noticed Jim and
                        rushed out knife in hand. “Get down from there”, he bellowed. Jim got, and with such
                        speed that he caught the leg or his shorts on a projecting piece of metal. The cotton
                        ripped across the seam from leg to leg and Jim stood there for a humiliating moment in a
                        sort of revealing little kilt enduring the smiles of the passengers who had looked up from
                        their books at the butcher’s shout.

                        That incident cured Jim of his urge to climb on the ship but he managed to give
                        us one more fright. He was lost off Dover. People from whom we enquired said, “Yes
                        we saw your little boy. He was by the railings watching that big aircraft carrier.” Now Jim,
                        though mischievous , is very obedient. It was not until George and I had conducted an
                        exhaustive search above and below decks that I really became anxious. Could he have
                        fallen overboard? Jim was returned to us by an unamused Officer. He had been found
                        in one of the lifeboats on the deck forbidden to children.

                        Our ship passed Dover after dark and it was an unforgettable sight. Dover Castle
                        and the cliffs were floodlit for the Victory Celebrations. One of the men passengers sat
                        down at the piano and played ‘The White Cliffs of Dover’, and people sang and a few
                        wept. The Mantola docked at Tilbury early next morning in a steady drizzle.
                        There was a dockers strike on and it took literally hours for all the luggage to be
                        put ashore. The ships stewards simply locked the public rooms and went off leaving the
                        passengers shivering on the docks. Eventually damp and bedraggled, we arrived at St
                        Pancras Station and were given a warm welcome by George’s sister Cath and her
                        husband Reg Pears, who had come all the way from Nottingham to meet us.
                        As we had to spend an hour in London before our train left for Nottingham,
                        George suggested that Cath and I should take the children somewhere for a meal. So
                        off we set in the cold drizzle, the boys and I without coats and laden with sundry
                        packages, including a hand woven native basket full of shoes. We must have looked like
                        a bunch of refugees as we stood in the hall of The Kings Cross Station Hotel because a
                        supercilious waiter in tails looked us up and down and said, “I’m afraid not Madam”, in
                        answer to my enquiry whether the hotel could provide lunch for six.
                        Anyway who cares! We had lunch instead at an ABC tea room — horrible
                        sausage and a mound or rather sloppy mashed potatoes, but very good ice-cream.
                        After the train journey in a very grimy third class coach, through an incredibly green and
                        beautiful countryside, we eventually reached Nottingham and took a bus to Jacksdale,
                        where George’s mother and sisters live in large detached houses side by side.
                        Ann and George were at the bus stop waiting for us, and thank God, submitted
                        to my kiss as though we had been parted for weeks instead of eight years. Even now
                        that we are together again my heart aches to think of all those missed years. They have
                        not changed much and I would have picked them out of a crowd, but Ann, once thin and
                        pale, is now very rosy and blooming. She still has her pretty soft plaits and her eyes are
                        still a clear calm blue. Young George is very striking looking with sparkling brown eyes, a
                        ready, slightly lopsided smile, and charming manners.

                        Mother, and George’s elder sister, Lottie Giles, welcomed us at the door with the
                        cheering news that our tea was ready. Ann showed us the way to mother’s lovely lilac
                        tiled bathroom for a wash before tea. Before I had even turned the tap, Jim had hung
                        form the glass towel rail and it lay in three pieces on the floor. There have since been
                        similar tragedies. I can see that life in civilisation is not without snags.

                        I am most grateful that Ann and George have accepted us so naturally and
                        affectionately. Ann said candidly, “Mummy, it’s a good thing that you had Aunt Cath with
                        you when you arrived because, honestly, I wouldn’t have known you.”

                        Eleanor.

                        Jacksdale England 28th August 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        I am sorry that I have not written for some time but honestly, I don’t know whether
                        I’m coming or going. Mother handed the top floor of her house to us and the
                        arrangement was that I should tidy our rooms and do our laundry and Mother would
                        prepare the meals except for breakfast. It looked easy at first. All the rooms have wall to
                        wall carpeting and there was a large vacuum cleaner in the box room. I was told a
                        window cleaner would do the windows.

                        Well the first time I used the Hoover I nearly died of fright. I pressed the switch
                        and immediately there was a roar and the bag filled with air to bursting point, or so I
                        thought. I screamed for Ann and she came at the run. I pointed to the bag and shouted
                        above the din, “What must I do? It’s going to burst!” Ann looked at me in astonishment
                        and said, “But Mummy that’s the way it works.” I couldn’t have her thinking me a
                        complete fool so I switched the current off and explained to Ann how it was that I had
                        never seen this type of equipment in action. How, in Tanganyika , I had never had a
                        house with electricity and that, anyway, electric equipment would be superfluous
                        because floors are of cement which the houseboy polishes by hand, one only has a
                        few rugs or grass mats on the floor. “But what about Granny’s house in South Africa?’”
                        she asked, so I explained about your Josephine who threatened to leave if you
                        bought a Hoover because that would mean that you did not think she kept the house
                        clean. The sad fact remains that, at fourteen, Ann knows far more about housework than I
                        do, or rather did! I’m learning fast.

                        The older children all go to school at different times in the morning. Ann leaves first
                        by bus to go to her Grammar School at Sutton-in-Ashfield. Shortly afterwards George
                        catches a bus for Nottingham where he attends the High School. So they have
                        breakfast in relays, usually scrambled egg made from a revolting dried egg mixture.
                        Then there are beds to make and washing and ironing to do, so I have little time for
                        sightseeing, though on a few afternoons George has looked after the younger children
                        and I have gone on bus tours in Derbyshire. Life is difficult here with all the restrictions on
                        foodstuffs. We all have ration books so get our fair share but meat, fats and eggs are
                        scarce and expensive. The weather is very wet. At first I used to hang out the washing
                        and then rush to bring it in when a shower came. Now I just let it hang.

                        We have left our imprint upon my Mother-in-law’s house for ever. Henry upset a
                        bottle of Milk of Magnesia in the middle of the pale fawn bedroom carpet. John, trying to
                        be helpful and doing some dusting, broke one of the delicate Dresden china candlesticks
                        which adorn our bedroom mantelpiece.Jim and Henry have wrecked the once
                        professionally landscaped garden and all the boys together bored a large hole through
                        Mother’s prized cherry tree. So now Mother has given up and gone off to Bournemouth
                        for a much needed holiday. Once a week I have the capable help of a cleaning woman,
                        called for some reason, ‘Mrs Two’, but I have now got all the cooking to do for eight. Mrs
                        Two is a godsend. She wears, of all things, a print mob cap with a hole in it. Says it
                        belonged to her Grandmother. Her price is far beyond Rubies to me, not so much
                        because she does, in a couple of hours, what it takes me all day to do, but because she
                        sells me boxes of fifty cigarettes. Some non-smoking relative, who works in Players
                        tobacco factory, passes on his ration to her. Until Mrs Two came to my rescue I had
                        been starved of cigarettes. Each time I asked for them at the shop the grocer would say,
                        “Are you registered with us?” Only very rarely would some kindly soul sell me a little
                        packet of five Woodbines.

                        England is very beautiful but the sooner we go home to Tanganyika, the better.
                        On this, George and I and the children agree.

                        Eleanor.

                        Jacksdale England 20th September 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        Our return passages have now been booked on the Winchester Castle and we
                        sail from Southampton on October the sixth. I look forward to returning to Tanganyika but
                        hope to visit England again in a few years time when our children are older and when
                        rationing is a thing of the past.

                        I have grown fond of my Sisters-in-law and admire my Mother-in-law very much.
                        She has a great sense of humour and has entertained me with stories of her very
                        eventful life, and told me lots of little stories of the children which did not figure in her
                        letters. One which amused me was about young George. During one of the air raids
                        early in the war when the sirens were screaming and bombers roaring overhead Mother
                        made the two children get into the cloak cupboard under the stairs. Young George
                        seemed quite unconcerned about the planes and the bombs but soon an anxious voice
                        asked in the dark, “Gran, what will I do if a spider falls on me?” I am afraid that Mother is
                        going to miss Ann and George very much.

                        I had a holiday last weekend when Lottie and I went up to London on a spree. It
                        was a most enjoyable weekend, though very rushed. We placed ourselves in the
                        hands of Thos. Cook and Sons and saw most of the sights of London and were run off
                        our feet in the process. As you all know London I shall not describe what I saw but just
                        to say that, best of all, I enjoyed walking along the Thames embankment in the evening
                        and the changing of the Guard at Whitehall. On Sunday morning Lottie and I went to
                        Kew Gardens and in the afternoon walked in Kensington Gardens.

                        We went to only one show, ‘The Skin of our Teeth’ starring Vivienne Leigh.
                        Neither of us enjoyed the performance at all and regretted having spent so much on
                        circle seats. The show was far too highbrow for my taste, a sort of satire on the survival
                        of the human race. Miss Leigh was unrecognisable in a blond wig and her voice strident.
                        However the night was not a dead loss as far as entertainment was concerned as we
                        were later caught up in a tragicomedy at our hotel.

                        We had booked communicating rooms at the enormous Imperial Hotel in Russell
                        Square. These rooms were comfortably furnished but very high up, and we had a rather
                        terrifying and dreary view from the windows of the enclosed courtyard far below. We
                        had some snacks and a chat in Lottie’s room and then I moved to mine and went to bed.
                        I had noted earlier that there was a special lock on the outer door of my room so that
                        when the door was closed from the inside it automatically locked itself.
                        I was just dropping off to sleep when I heard a hammering which seemed to
                        come from my wardrobe. I got up, rather fearfully, and opened the wardrobe door and
                        noted for the first time that the wardrobe was set in an opening in the wall and that the
                        back of the wardrobe also served as the back of the wardrobe in the room next door. I
                        quickly shut it again and went to confer with Lottie.

                        Suddenly a male voice was raised next door in supplication, “Mary Mother of
                        God, Help me! They’ve locked me in!” and the hammering resumed again, sometimes
                        on the door, and then again on the back of the wardrobe of the room next door. Lottie
                        had by this time joined me and together we listened to the prayers and to the
                        hammering. Then the voice began to threaten, “If you don’t let me out I’ll jump out of the
                        window.” Great consternation on our side of the wall. I went out into the passage and
                        called through the door, “You’re not locked in. Come to your door and I’ll tell you how to
                        open it.” Silence for a moment and then again the prayers followed by a threat. All the
                        other doors in the corridor remained shut.

                        Luckily just then a young man and a woman came walking down the corridor and I
                        explained the situation. The young man hurried off for the night porter who went into the
                        next door room. In a matter of minutes there was peace next door. When the night
                        porter came out into the corridor again I asked for an explanation. He said quite casually,
                        “It’s all right Madam. He’s an Irish Gentleman in Show Business. He gets like this on a
                        Saturday night when he has had a drop too much. He won’t give any more trouble
                        now.” And he didn’t. Next morning at breakfast Lottie and I tried to spot the gentleman in
                        the Show Business, but saw no one who looked like the owner of that charming Irish
                        voice.

                        George had to go to London on business last Monday and took the older
                        children with him for a few hours of sight seeing. They returned quite unimpressed.
                        Everything was too old and dirty and there were far too many people about, but they
                        had enjoyed riding on the escalators at the tube stations, and all agreed that the highlight
                        of the trip was, “Dad took us to lunch at the Chicken Inn.”

                        Now that it is almost time to leave England I am finding the housework less of a
                        drudgery, Also, as it is school holiday time, Jim and Henry are able to go on walks with
                        the older children and so use up some of their surplus energy. Cath and I took the
                        children (except young George who went rabbit shooting with his uncle Reg, and
                        Henry, who stayed at home with his dad) to the Wakes at Selston, the neighbouring
                        village. There were the roundabouts and similar contraptions but the side shows had
                        more appeal for the children. Ann and Kate found a stall where assorted prizes were
                        spread out on a sloping table. Anyone who could land a penny squarely on one of
                        these objects was given a similar one as a prize.

                        I was touched to see that both girls ignored all the targets except a box of fifty
                        cigarettes which they were determined to win for me. After numerous attempts, Kate
                        landed her penny successfully and you would have loved to have seen her radiant little
                        face.

                        Eleanor.

                        Dar es Salaam 22nd October 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        Back in Tanganyika at last, but not together. We have to stay in Dar es Salaam
                        until tomorrow when the train leaves for Dodoma. We arrived yesterday morning to find
                        all the hotels filled with people waiting to board ships for England. Fortunately some
                        friends came to the rescue and Ann, Kate and John have gone to stay with them. Jim,
                        Henry and I are sleeping in a screened corner of the lounge of the New Africa Hotel, and
                        George and young George have beds in the Palm Court of the same hotel.

                        We travelled out from England in the Winchester Castle under troopship
                        conditions. We joined her at Southampton after a rather slow train journey from
                        Nottingham. We arrived after dark and from the station we could see a large ship in the
                        docks with a floodlit red funnel. “Our ship,” yelled the children in delight, but it was not the
                        Winchester Castle but the Queen Elizabeth, newly reconditioned.

                        We had hoped to board our ship that evening but George made enquiries and
                        found that we would not be allowed on board until noon next day. Without much hope,
                        we went off to try to get accommodation for eight at a small hotel recommended by the
                        taxi driver. Luckily for us there was a very motherly woman at the reception desk. She
                        looked in amusement at the six children and said to me, “Goodness are all these yours,
                        ducks? Then she called over her shoulder, “Wilf, come and see this lady with lots of
                        children. We must try to help.” They settled the problem most satisfactorily by turning
                        two rooms into a dormitory.

                        In the morning we had time to inspect bomb damage in the dock area of
                        Southampton. Most of the rubble had been cleared away but there are still numbers of
                        damaged buildings awaiting demolition. A depressing sight. We saw the Queen Mary
                        at anchor, still in her drab war time paint, but magnificent nevertheless.
                        The Winchester Castle was crammed with passengers and many travelled in
                        acute discomfort. We were luckier than most because the two girls, the three small boys
                        and I had a stateroom to ourselves and though it was stripped of peacetime comforts,
                        we had a private bathroom and toilet. The two Georges had bunks in a huge men-only
                        dormitory somewhere in the bowls of the ship where they had to share communal troop
                        ship facilities. The food was plentiful but unexciting and one had to queue for afternoon
                        tea. During the day the decks were crowded and there was squatting room only. The
                        many children on board got bored.

                        Port Said provided a break and we were all entertained by the ‘Gully Gully’ man
                        and his conjuring tricks, and though we had no money to spend at Simon Artz, we did at
                        least have a chance to stretch our legs. Next day scores of passengers took ill with
                        sever stomach upsets, whether from food poisoning, or as was rumoured, from bad
                        water taken on at the Egyptian port, I don’t know. Only the two Georges in our family
                        were affected and their attacks were comparatively mild.

                        As we neared the Kenya port of Mombassa, the passengers for Dar es Salaam
                        were told that they would have to disembark at Mombassa and continue their journey in
                        a small coaster, the Al Said. The Winchester Castle is too big for the narrow channel
                        which leads to Dar es Salaam harbour.

                        From the wharf the Al Said looked beautiful. She was once the private yacht of
                        the Sultan of Zanzibar and has lovely lines. Our admiration lasted only until we were
                        shown our cabins. With one voice our children exclaimed, “Gosh they stink!” They did, of
                        a mixture of rancid oil and sweat and stale urine. The beds were not yet made and the
                        thin mattresses had ominous stains on them. John, ever fastidious, lifted his mattress and two enormous cockroaches scuttled for cover.

                        We had a good homely lunch served by two smiling African stewards and
                        afterwards we sat on deck and that was fine too, though behind ones enjoyment there
                        was the thought of those stuffy and dirty cabins. That first night nearly everyone,
                        including George and our older children, slept on deck. Women occupied deck chairs
                        and men and children slept on the bare decks. Horrifying though the idea was, I decided
                        that, as Jim had a bad cough, he, Henry and I would sleep in our cabin.

                        When I announced my intention of sleeping in the cabin one of the passengers
                        gave me some insecticide spray which I used lavishly, but without avail. The children
                        slept but I sat up all night with the light on, determined to keep at least their pillows clear
                        of the cockroaches which scurried about boldly regardless of the light. All the next day
                        and night we avoided the cabins. The Al Said stopped for some hours at Zanzibar to
                        offload her deck cargo of live cattle and packing cases from the hold. George and the
                        elder children went ashore for a walk but I felt too lazy and there was plenty to watch
                        from deck.

                        That night I too occupied a deck chair and slept quite comfortably, and next
                        morning we entered the palm fringed harbour of Dar es Salaam and were home.

                        Eleanor.

                        Mbeya 1st November 1946

                        Dearest Family.

                        Home at last! We are all most happily installed in a real family house about three
                        miles out of Mbeya and near the school. This house belongs to an elderly German and
                        has been taken over by the Custodian of Enemy Property and leased to the
                        Government.

                        The owner, whose name is Shenkel, was not interned but is allowed to occupy a
                        smaller house on the Estate. I found him in the garden this morning lecturing the children
                        on what they may do and may not do. I tried to make it quite clear to him that he was not
                        our landlord, though he clearly thinks otherwise. After he had gone I had to take two
                        aspirin and lie down to recover my composure! I had been warned that he has this effect
                        on people.

                        Mr Shenkel is a short and ugly man, his clothes are stained with food and he
                        wears steel rimmed glasses tied round his head with a piece of dirty elastic because
                        one earpiece is missing. He speaks with a thick German accent but his English is fluent
                        and I believe he is a cultured and clever man. But he is maddening. The children were
                        more amused than impressed by his exhortations and have happily Christened our
                        home, ‘Old Shenks’.

                        The house has very large grounds as the place is really a derelict farm. It suits us
                        down to the ground. We had no sooner unpacked than George went off on safari after
                        those maneating lions in the Njombe District. he accounted for one, and a further two
                        jointly with a Game Scout, before we left for England. But none was shot during the five
                        months we were away as George’s relief is quite inexperienced in such work. George
                        thinks that there are still about a dozen maneaters at large. His theory is that a female
                        maneater moved into the area in 1938 when maneating first started, and brought up her
                        cubs to be maneaters, and those cubs in turn did the same. The three maneating lions
                        that have been shot were all in very good condition and not old and maimed as
                        maneaters usually are.

                        George anticipates that it will be months before all these lions are accounted for
                        because they are constantly on the move and cover a very large area. The lions have to
                        be hunted on foot because they range over broken country covered by bush and fairly
                        dense thicket.

                        I did a bit of shooting myself yesterday and impressed our African servants and
                        the children and myself. What a fluke! Our houseboy came to say that there was a snake
                        in the garden, the biggest he had ever seen. He said it was too big to kill with a stick and
                        would I shoot it. I had no gun but a heavy .450 Webley revolver and I took this and
                        hurried out with the children at my heels.

                        The snake turned out to be an unusually large puff adder which had just shed its
                        skin. It looked beautiful in a repulsive way. So flanked by servants and children I took
                        aim and shot, not hitting the head as I had planned, but breaking the snake’s back with
                        the heavy bullet. The two native boys then rushed up with sticks and flattened the head.
                        “Ma you’re a crack shot,” cried the kids in delighted surprise. I hope to rest on my laurels
                        for a long, long while.

                        Although there are only a few weeks of school term left the four older children will
                        start school on Monday. Not only am I pleased with our new home here but also with
                        the staff I have engaged. Our new houseboy, Reuben, (but renamed Robin by our
                        children) is not only cheerful and willing but intelligent too, and Jumbe, the wood and
                        garden boy, is a born clown and a source of great entertainment to the children.

                        I feel sure that we are all going to be very happy here at ‘Old Shenks!.

                        Eleanor.

                        #6267
                        TracyTracy
                        Participant

                          From Tanganyika with Love

                          continued part 8

                          With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                          Morogoro 20th January 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          It is all arranged for us to go on three months leave to Cape Town next month so
                          get out your flags. How I shall love showing off Kate and John to you and this time
                          George will be with us and you’ll be able to get to know him properly. You can’t think
                          what a comfort it will be to leave all the worries of baggage and tipping to him. We will all
                          be travelling by ship to Durban and from there to Cape Town by train. I rather dread the
                          journey because there is a fifth little Rushby on the way and, as always, I am very
                          queasy.

                          Kate has become such a little companion to me that I dread the thought of leaving
                          her behind with you to start schooling. I miss Ann and George so much now and must
                          face separation from Kate as well. There does not seem to be any alternative though.
                          There is a boarding school in Arusha and another has recently been started in Mbeya,
                          but both places are so far away and I know she would be very unhappy as a boarder at
                          this stage. Living happily with you and attending a day school might wean her of her
                          dependance upon me. As soon as this wretched war ends we mean to get Ann and
                          George back home and Kate too and they can then all go to boarding school together.
                          If I were a more methodical person I would try to teach Kate myself, but being a
                          muddler I will have my hands full with Johnny and the new baby. Life passes pleasantly
                          but quietly here. Much of my time is taken up with entertaining the children and sewing
                          for them and just waiting for George to come home.

                          George works so hard on these safaris and this endless elephant hunting to
                          protect native crops entails so much foot safari, that he has lost a good deal of weight. it
                          is more than ten years since he had a holiday so he is greatly looking forward to this one.
                          Four whole months together!

                          I should like to keep the ayah, Janet, for the new baby, but she says she wants
                          to return to her home in the Southern Highlands Province and take a job there. She is
                          unusually efficient and so clean, and the houseboy and cook are quite scared of her. She
                          bawls at them if the children’s meals are served a few minutes late but she is always
                          respectful towards me and practically creeps around on tiptoe when George is home.
                          She has a room next to the outside kitchen. One night thieves broke into the kitchen and
                          stole a few things, also a canvas chair and mat from the verandah. Ayah heard them, and
                          grabbing a bit of firewood, she gave chase. Her shouts so alarmed the thieves that they
                          ran off up the hill jettisoning their loot as they ran. She is a great character.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 30th July 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Safely back in Morogoro after a rather grim voyage from Durban. Our ship was
                          completely blacked out at night and we had to sleep with warm clothing and life belts
                          handy and had so many tedious boat drills. It was a nuisance being held up for a whole
                          month in Durban, because I was so very pregnant when we did embark. In fact George
                          suggested that I had better hide in the ‘Ladies’ until the ship sailed for fear the Captain
                          might refuse to take me. It seems that the ship, on which we were originally booked to
                          travel, was torpedoed somewhere off the Cape.

                          We have been given a very large house this tour with a mosquito netted
                          sleeping porch which will be fine for the new baby. The only disadvantage is that the
                          house is on the very edge of the residential part of Morogoro and Johnny will have to
                          go quite a distance to find playmates.

                          I still miss Kate terribly. She is a loving little person. I had prepared for a scene
                          when we said good-bye but I never expected that she would be the comforter. It
                          nearly broke my heart when she put her arms around me and said, “I’m so sorry
                          Mummy, please don’t cry. I’ll be good. Please don’t cry.” I’m afraid it was all very
                          harrowing for you also. It is a great comfort to hear that she has settled down so happily.
                          I try not to think consciously of my absent children and remind myself that there are
                          thousands of mothers in the same boat, but they are always there at the back of my
                          mind.

                          Mother writes that Ann and George are perfectly happy and well, and that though
                          German bombers do fly over fairly frequently, they are unlikely to drop their bombs on
                          a small place like Jacksdale.

                          George has already left on safari to the Rufiji. There was no replacement for his
                          job while he was away so he is anxious to get things moving again. Johnny and I are
                          going to move in with friends until he returns, just in case all the travelling around brings
                          the new baby on earlier than expected.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 26th August 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Our new son, James Caleb. was born at 3.30 pm yesterday afternoon, with a
                          minimum of fuss, in the hospital here. The Doctor was out so my friend, Sister Murray,
                          delivered the baby. The Sister is a Scots girl, very efficient and calm and encouraging,
                          and an ideal person to have around at such a time.

                          Everything, this time, went without a hitch and I feel fine and proud of my
                          bouncing son. He weighs nine pounds and ten ounces and is a big boned fellow with
                          dark hair and unusually strongly marked eyebrows. His eyes are strong too and already
                          seem to focus. George is delighted with him and brought Hugh Nelson to see him this
                          morning. Hugh took one look, and, astonished I suppose by the baby’s apparent
                          awareness, said, “Gosh, this one has been here before.” The baby’s cot is beside my
                          bed so I can admire him as much as I please. He has large strong hands and George
                          reckons he’ll make a good boxer some day.

                          Another of my early visitors was Mabemba, George’s orderly. He is a very big
                          African and looks impressive in his Game Scouts uniform. George met him years ago at
                          Mahenge when he was a young elephant hunter and Mabemba was an Askari in the
                          Police. Mabemba takes quite a proprietary interest in the family.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 25th December 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Christmas Day today, but not a gay one. I have Johnny in bed with a poisoned
                          leg so he missed the children’s party at the Club. To make things a little festive I have
                          put up a little Christmas tree in the children’s room and have hung up streamers and
                          balloons above the beds. Johnny demands a lot of attention so it is fortunate that little
                          James is such a very good baby. He sleeps all night until 6 am when his feed is due.
                          One morning last week I got up as usual to feed him but I felt so dopey that I
                          thought I’d better have a cold wash first. I went into the bathroom and had a hurried
                          splash and then grabbed a towel to dry my face. Immediately I felt an agonising pain in
                          my nose. Reason? There was a scorpion in the towel! In no time at all my nose looked
                          like a pear and felt burning hot. The baby screamed with frustration whilst I feverishly
                          bathed my nose and applied this and that in an effort to cool it.

                          For three days my nose was very red and tender,”A real boozer nose”, said
                          George. But now, thank goodness, it is back to normal.

                          Some of the younger marrieds and a couple of bachelors came around,
                          complete with portable harmonium, to sing carols in the early hours. No sooner had we
                          settled down again to woo sleep when we were disturbed by shouts and screams from
                          our nearest neighbour’s house. “Just celebrating Christmas”, grunted George, but we
                          heard this morning that the neighbour had fallen down his verandah steps and broken his
                          leg.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro Hospital 30th September 1943

                          Dearest Family,

                          Well now we are eight! Our new son, Henry, was born on the night of the 28th.
                          He is a beautiful baby, weighing ten pounds three and a half ounces. This baby is very
                          well developed, handsome, and rather superior looking, and not at all amusing to look at
                          as the other boys were.George was born with a moustache, John had a large nose and
                          looked like a little old man, and Jim, bless his heart, looked rather like a baby
                          chimpanzee. Henry is different. One of my visitors said, “Heaven he’ll have to be a
                          Bishop!” I expect the lawn sleeves of his nightie really gave her that idea, but the baby
                          does look like ‘Someone’. He is very good and George, John, and Jim are delighted
                          with him, so is Mabemba.

                          We have a dear little nurse looking after us. She is very petite and childish
                          looking. When the baby was born and she brought him for me to see, the nurse asked
                          his name. I said jokingly, “His name is Benjamin – the last of the family.” She is now very
                          peeved to discover that his real name is Henry William and persists in calling him
                          ‘Benjie’.I am longing to get home and into my pleasant rut. I have been away for two
                          whole weeks and George is managing so well that I shall feel quite expendable if I don’t
                          get home soon. As our home is a couple of miles from the hospital, I arranged to move
                          in and stay with the nursing sister on the day the baby was due. There I remained for ten
                          whole days before the baby was born. Each afternoon George came and took me for a
                          ride in the bumpy Bedford lorry and the Doctor tried this and that but the baby refused
                          to be hurried.

                          On the tenth day I had the offer of a lift and decided to go home for tea and
                          surprise George. It was a surprise too, because George was entertaining a young
                          Game Ranger for tea and my arrival, looking like a perambulating big top, must have
                          been rather embarrassing.Henry was born at the exact moment that celebrations started
                          in the Township for the end of the Muslim religious festival of Ramadan. As the Doctor
                          held him up by his ankles, there was the sound of hooters and firecrackers from the town.
                          The baby has a birthmark in the shape of a crescent moon above his left eyebrow.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 26th January 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We have just heard that we are to be transferred to the Headquarters of the
                          Game Department at a place called Lyamungu in the Northern Province. George is not
                          at all pleased because he feels that the new job will entail a good deal of office work and
                          that his beloved but endless elephant hunting will be considerably curtailed. I am glad of
                          that and I am looking forward to seeing a new part of Tanganyika and particularly
                          Kilimanjaro which dominates Lyamungu.

                          Thank goodness our menagerie is now much smaller. We found a home for the
                          guinea pigs last December and Susie, our mischievous guinea-fowl, has flown off to find
                          a mate.Last week I went down to Dar es Salaam for a check up by Doctor John, a
                          woman doctor, leaving George to cope with the three boys. I was away two nights and
                          a day and returned early in the morning just as George was giving Henry his six o’clock
                          bottle. It always amazes me that so very masculine a man can do my chores with no
                          effort and I have a horrible suspicion that he does them better than I do. I enjoyed the
                          short break at the coast very much. I stayed with friends and we bathed in the warm sea
                          and saw a good film.

                          Now I suppose there will be a round of farewell parties. People in this country
                          are most kind and hospitable.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 20th March 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We left Morogoro after the round of farewell parties I had anticipated. The final
                          one was at the Club on Saturday night. George made a most amusing speech and the
                          party was a very pleasant occasion though I was rather tired after all the packing.
                          Several friends gathered to wave us off on Monday morning. We had two lorries
                          loaded with our goods. I rode in the cab of the first one with Henry on my knee. George
                          with John and Jim rode in the second one. As there was no room for them in the cab,
                          they sat on our couch which was placed across the width of the lorry behind the cab. This
                          seat was not as comfortable as it sounds, because the space behind the couch was
                          taken up with packing cases which were not lashed in place and these kept moving
                          forward as the lorry bumped its way over the bad road.

                          Soon there was hardly any leg room and George had constantly to stand up and
                          push the second layer of packing cases back to prevent them from toppling over onto
                          the children and himself. As it is now the rainy season the road was very muddy and
                          treacherous and the lorries travelled so slowly it was dark by the time we reached
                          Karogwe from where we were booked to take the train next morning to Moshi.
                          Next morning we heard that there had been a washaway on the line and that the
                          train would be delayed for at least twelve hours. I was not feeling well and certainly did
                          not enjoy my day. Early in the afternoon Jimmy ran into a wall and blackened both his
                          eyes. What a child! As the day wore on I felt worse and worse and when at last the train
                          did arrive I simply crawled into my bunk whilst George coped nobly with the luggage
                          and the children.

                          We arrived at Moshi at breakfast time and went straight to the Lion Cub Hotel
                          where I took to my bed with a high temperature. It was, of course, malaria. I always have
                          my attacks at the most inopportune times. Fortunately George ran into some friends
                          called Eccles and the wife Mollie came to my room and bathed Henry and prepared his
                          bottle and fed him. George looked after John and Jim. Next day I felt much better and
                          we drove out to Lyamungu the day after. There we had tea with the Game Warden and
                          his wife before moving into our new home nearby.

                          The Game Warden is Captain Monty Moore VC. He came out to Africa
                          originally as an Officer in the King’s African Rifles and liked the country so much he left the
                          Army and joined the Game Department. He was stationed at Banagi in the Serengetti
                          Game Reserve and is well known for his work with the lions there. He particularly tamed
                          some of the lions by feeding them so that they would come out into the open and could
                          readily be photographed by tourists. His wife Audrey, has written a book about their
                          experiences at Banagi. It is called “Serengetti”

                          Our cook, Hamisi, soon had a meal ready for us and we all went to bed early.
                          This is a very pleasant house and I know we will be happy here. I still feel a little shaky
                          but that is the result of all the quinine I have taken. I expect I shall feel fine in a day or two.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 15th May 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          Well, here we are settled comfortably in our very nice house. The house is
                          modern and roomy, and there is a large enclosed verandah, which will be a Godsend in
                          the wet weather as a playroom for the children. The only drawback is that there are so
                          many windows to be curtained and cleaned. The grounds consist of a very large lawn
                          and a few beds of roses and shrubs. It is an ideal garden for children, unlike our steeply
                          terraced garden at Morogoro.

                          Lyamungu is really the Government Coffee Research Station. It is about sixteen
                          miles from the town of Moshi which is the centre of the Tanganyika coffee growing
                          industry. Lyamungu, which means ‘place of God’ is in the foothills of Mt Kilimanjaro and
                          we have a beautiful view of Kilimanjaro. Kibo, the more spectacular of the two mountain
                          peaks, towers above us, looking from this angle, like a giant frosted plum pudding. Often the mountain is veiled by cloud and mist which sometimes comes down to
                          our level so that visibility is practically nil. George dislikes both mist and mountain but I
                          like both and so does John. He in fact saw Kibo before I did. On our first day here, the
                          peak was completely hidden by cloud. In the late afternoon when the children were
                          playing on the lawn outside I was indoors hanging curtains. I heard John call out, “Oh
                          Mummy, isn’t it beautiful!” I ran outside and there, above a scarf of cloud, I saw the
                          showy dome of Kibo with the setting sun shining on it tingeing the snow pink. It was an
                          unforgettable experience.

                          As this is the rainy season, the surrounding country side is very lush and green.
                          Everywhere one sees the rich green of the coffee plantations and the lighter green of
                          the banana groves. Unfortunately our walks are rather circumscribed. Except for the main road to Moshi, there is nowhere to walk except through the Government coffee
                          plantation. Paddy, our dog, thinks life is pretty boring as there is no bush here and
                          nothing to hunt. There are only half a dozen European families here and half of those are
                          on very distant terms with the other half which makes the station a rather uncomfortable
                          one.

                          The coffee expert who runs this station is annoyed because his European staff
                          has been cut down owing to the war, and three of the vacant houses and some office
                          buildings have been taken over temporarily by the Game Department. Another house
                          has been taken over by the head of the Labour Department. However I don’t suppose
                          the ill feeling will effect us much. We are so used to living in the bush that we are not
                          socially inclined any way.

                          Our cook, Hamisi, came with us from Morogoro but I had to engage a new
                          houseboy and kitchenboy. I first engaged a houseboy who produced a wonderful ‘chit’
                          in which his previous employer describes him as his “friend and confidant”. I felt rather
                          dubious about engaging him and how right I was. On his second day with us I produced
                          some of Henry’s napkins, previously rinsed by me, and asked this boy to wash them.
                          He looked most offended and told me that it was beneath his dignity to do women’s
                          work. We parted immediately with mutual relief.

                          Now I have a good natured fellow named Japhet who, though hard on crockery,
                          is prepared to do anything and loves playing with the children. He is a local boy, a
                          member of the Chagga tribe. These Chagga are most intelligent and, on the whole, well
                          to do as they all have their own small coffee shambas. Japhet tells me that his son is at
                          the Uganda University College studying medicine.The kitchen boy is a tall youth called
                          Tovelo, who helps both Hamisi, the cook, and the houseboy and also keeps an eye on
                          Henry when I am sewing. I still make all the children’s clothes and my own. Life is
                          pleasant but dull. George promises that he will take the whole family on safari when
                          Henry is a little older.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 18th July 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          Life drifts quietly by at Lyamungu with each day much like the one before – or
                          they would be, except that the children provide the sort of excitement that prohibits
                          boredom. Of the three boys our Jim is the best at this. Last week Jim wandered into the
                          coffee plantation beside our house and chewed some newly spayed berries. Result?
                          A high temperature and nasty, bloody diarrhoea, so we had to rush him to the hospital at
                          Moshi for treatment. however he was well again next day and George went off on safari.
                          That night there was another crisis. As the nights are now very cold, at this high
                          altitude, we have a large fire lit in the living room and the boy leaves a pile of logs
                          beside the hearth so that I can replenish the fire when necessary. Well that night I took
                          Henry off to bed, leaving John and Jim playing in the living room. When their bedtime
                          came, I called them without leaving the bedroom. When I had tucked John and Jim into
                          bed, I sat reading a bedtime story as I always do. Suddenly I saw smoke drifting
                          through the door, and heard a frightening rumbling noise. Japhet rushed in to say that the
                          lounge chimney was on fire! Picture me, panic on the inside and sweet smile on the
                          outside, as I picked Henry up and said to the other two, “There’s nothing to be
                          frightened about chaps, but get up and come outside for a bit.” Stupid of me to be so
                          heroic because John and Jim were not at all scared but only too delighted at the chance
                          of rushing about outside in the dark. The fire to them was just a bit of extra fun.

                          We hurried out to find one boy already on the roof and the other passing up a
                          brimming bucket of water. Other boys appeared from nowhere and soon cascades of
                          water were pouring down the chimney. The result was a mountain of smouldering soot
                          on the hearth and a pool of black water on the living room floor. However the fire was out
                          and no serious harm done because all the floors here are cement and another stain on
                          the old rug will hardly be noticed. As the children reluctantly returned to bed John
                          remarked smugly, “I told Jim not to put all the wood on the fire at once but he wouldn’t
                          listen.” I might have guessed!

                          However it was not Jim but John who gave me the worst turn of all this week. As
                          a treat I decided to take the boys to the river for a picnic tea. The river is not far from our
                          house but we had never been there before so I took the kitchen boy, Tovelo, to show
                          us the way. The path is on the level until one is in sight of the river when the bank slopes
                          steeply down. I decided that it was too steep for the pram so I stopped to lift Henry out
                          and carry him. When I looked around I saw John running down the slope towards the
                          river. The stream is not wide but flows swiftly and I had no idea how deep it was. All I
                          knew was that it was a trout stream. I called for John, “Stop, wait for me!” but he ran on
                          and made for a rude pole bridge which spanned the river. He started to cross and then,
                          to my horror, I saw John slip. There was a splash and he disappeared under the water. I
                          just dumped the baby on the ground, screamed to the boy to mind him and ran madly
                          down the slope to the river. Suddenly I saw John’s tight fitting felt hat emerge, then his
                          eyes and nose. I dashed into the water and found, to my intense relief, that it only
                          reached up to my shoulders but, thank heaven no further. John’s steady eyes watched
                          me trustingly as I approached him and carried him safely to the bank. He had been
                          standing on a rock and had not panicked at all though he had to stand up very straight
                          and tall to keep his nose out of water. I was too proud of him to scold him for
                          disobedience and too wet anyway.

                          I made John undress and put on two spare pullovers and wrapped Henry’s
                          baby blanket round his waist like a sarong. We made a small fire over which I crouched
                          with literally chattering teeth whilst Tovelo ran home to fetch a coat for me and dry clothes
                          for John.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 16th August 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We have a new bull terrier bitch pup whom we have named Fanny III . So once
                          more we have a menagerie , the two dogs, two cats Susie and Winnie, and
                          some pet hens who live in the garage and are a real nuisance.

                          As John is nearly six I thought it time that he started lessons and wrote off to Dar
                          es Salaam for the correspondence course. We have had one week of lessons and I am
                          already in a state of physical and mental exhaustion. John is a most reluctant scholar.
                          “Why should I learn to read, when you can read to me?” he asks, and “Anyway why
                          should I read such stupid stuff, ‘Run Rover Run’, and ‘Mother play with baby’ . Who
                          wants to read about things like that? I don’t.”

                          He rather likes sums, but the only subject about which he is enthusiastic is
                          prehistoric history. He laps up information about ‘The Tree Dwellers’, though he is very
                          sceptical about the existence of such people. “God couldn’t be so silly to make people
                          so stupid. Fancy living in trees when it is easy to make huts like the natives.” ‘The Tree
                          Dwellers is a highly imaginative story about a revolting female called Sharptooth and her
                          offspring called Bodo. I have a very clear mental image of Sharptooth, so it came as a
                          shock to me and highly amused George when John looked at me reflectively across the
                          tea table and said, “Mummy I expect Sharptooth looked like you. You have a sharp
                          tooth too!” I have, my eye teeth are rather sharp, but I hope the resemblance stops
                          there.

                          John has an uncomfortably logical mind for a small boy. The other day he was
                          lying on the lawn staring up at the clouds when he suddenly muttered “I don’t believe it.”
                          “Believe what?” I asked. “That Jesus is coming on a cloud one day. How can he? The
                          thick ones always stay high up. What’s he going to do, jump down with a parachute?”
                          Tovelo, my kitchen boy, announced one evening that his grandmother was in the
                          kitchen and wished to see me. She was a handsome and sensible Chagga woman who
                          brought sad news. Her little granddaughter had stumbled backwards into a large cooking
                          pot of almost boiling maize meal porridge and was ‘ngongwa sana’ (very ill). I grabbed
                          a large bottle of Picric Acid and a packet of gauze which we keep for these emergencies
                          and went with her, through coffee shambas and banana groves to her daughter’s house.
                          Inside the very neat thatched hut the mother sat with the naked child lying face
                          downwards on her knee. The child’s buttocks and the back of her legs were covered in
                          huge burst blisters from which a watery pus dripped. It appeared that the accident had
                          happened on the previous day.

                          I could see that it was absolutely necessary to clean up the damaged area, and I
                          suddenly remembered that there was a trained African hospital dresser on the station. I
                          sent the father to fetch him and whilst the dresser cleaned off the sloughed skin with
                          forceps and swabs saturated in Picric Acid, I cut the gauze into small squares which I
                          soaked in the lotion and laid on the cleaned area. I thought the small pieces would be
                          easier to change especially as the whole of the most tender parts, front and back, were
                          badly scalded. The child seemed dazed and neither the dresser nor I thought she would
                          live. I gave her half an aspirin and left three more half tablets to be given four hourly.
                          Next day she seemed much brighter. I poured more lotion on the gauze
                          disturbing as few pieces as possible and again the next day and the next. After a week
                          the skin was healing well and the child eating normally. I am sure she will be all right now.
                          The new skin is a brilliant red and very shiny but it is pale round the edges of the burnt
                          area and will I hope later turn brown. The mother never uttered a word of thanks, but the
                          granny is grateful and today brought the children a bunch of bananas.

                          Eleanor.

                          c/o Game Dept. P.O.Moshi. 29th September 1944

                          Dearest Mummy,

                          I am so glad that you so enjoyed my last letter with the description of our very
                          interesting and enjoyable safari through Masailand. You said you would like an even
                          fuller description of it to pass around amongst the relations, so, to please you, I have
                          written it out in detail and enclose the result.

                          We have spent a quiet week after our exertions and all are well here.

                          Very much love,
                          Eleanor.

                          Safari in Masailand

                          George and I were at tea with our three little boys on the front lawn of our house
                          in Lyamungu, Northern Tanganyika. It was John’s sixth birthday and he and Jim, a
                          happy sturdy three year old, and Henry, aged eleven months, were munching the
                          squares of plain chocolate which rounded off the party, when George said casually
                          across the table to me, “Could you be ready by the day after tomorrow to go on
                          safari?” “Me too?” enquired John anxiously, before I had time to reply, and “Me too?”
                          echoed Jim. “yes, of course I can”, said I to George and “of course you’re coming too”,
                          to the children who rate a day spent in the bush higher than any other pleasure.
                          So in the early morning two days later, we started out happily for Masailand in a
                          three ton Ford lorry loaded to capacity with the five Rushbys, the safari paraphernalia,
                          drums of petrol and quite a retinue of servants and Game Scouts. George travelling
                          alone on his monthly safaris, takes only the cook and a couple of Game Scouts, but this was to be a safari de luxe.

                          Henry and I shared the cab with George who was driving, whilst John and Jim
                          with the faithful orderly Mabemba beside them to point out the game animals, were
                          installed upon rolls of bedding in the body of the lorry. The lorry lumbered along, first
                          through coffee shambas, and then along the main road between Moshi and Arusha.
                          After half an hour or so, we turned South off the road into a track which crossed the
                          Sanya Plains and is the beginning of this part of Masailand. Though the dry season was
                          at its height, and the pasture dry and course, we were soon passing small groups of
                          game. This area is a Game Sanctuary and the antelope grazed quietly quite undisturbed
                          by the passing lorry. Here and there zebra stood bunched by the road, a few wild
                          ostriches stalked jerkily by, and in the distance some wildebeest cavorted around in their
                          crazy way.

                          Soon the grasslands gave way to thorn bush, and we saw six fantastically tall
                          giraffe standing motionless with their heads turned enquiringly towards us. George
                          stopped the lorry so the children could have a good view of them. John was enchanted
                          but Jim, alas, was asleep.

                          At mid day we reached the Kikoletwa River and turned aside to camp. Beside
                          the river, under huge leafy trees, there was a beautiful camping spot, but the river was
                          deep and reputed to be full of crocodiles so we passed it by and made our camp
                          some distance from the river under a tall thorn tree with a flat lacy canopy. All around the
                          camp lay uprooted trees of similar size that had been pushed over by elephants. As
                          soon as the lorry stopped a camp chair was set up for me and the Game Scouts quickly
                          slashed down grass and cleared the camp site of thorns. The same boys then pitched the tent whilst George himself set up the three camp beds and the folding cot for Henry,
                          and set up the safari table and the canvas wash bowl and bath.

                          The cook in the meantime had cleared a cool spot for the kitchen , opened up the
                          chop boxes and started a fire. The cook’s boy and the dhobi (laundry boy) brought
                          water from the rather muddy river and tea was served followed shortly afterward by an
                          excellent lunch. In a very short time the camp had a suprisingly homely look. Nappies
                          fluttered from a clothes line, Henry slept peacefully in his cot, John and Jim sprawled on
                          one bed looking at comics, and I dozed comfortably on another.

                          George, with the Game Scouts, drove off in the lorry about his work. As a Game
                          Ranger it is his business to be on a constant look out for poachers, both African and
                          European, and for disease in game which might infect the valuable herds of Masai cattle.
                          The lorry did not return until dusk by which time the children had bathed enthusiastically in
                          the canvas bath and were ready for supper and bed. George backed the lorry at right
                          angles to the tent, Henry’s cot and two camp beds were set up in the lorry, the tarpaulin
                          was lashed down and the children put to bed in their novel nursery.

                          When darkness fell a large fire was lit in front of the camp, the exited children at
                          last fell asleep and George and I sat on by the fire enjoying the cool and quiet night.
                          When the fire subsided into a bed of glowing coals, it was time for our bed. During the
                          night I was awakened by the sound of breaking branches and strange indescribable
                          noises.” Just elephant”, said George comfortably and instantly fell asleep once more. I
                          didn’t! We rose with the birds next morning, but breakfast was ready and in a
                          remarkably short time the lorry had been reloaded and we were once more on our way.
                          For about half a mile we made our own track across the plain and then we turned
                          into the earth road once more. Soon we had reached the river and were looking with
                          dismay at the suspension bridge which we had to cross. At the far side, one steel
                          hawser was missing and there the bridge tilted dangerously. There was no handrail but
                          only heavy wooden posts which marked the extremities of the bridge. WhenGeorge
                          measured the distance between the posts he found that there could be barely two
                          inches to spare on either side of the cumbersome lorry.

                          He decided to risk crossing, but the children and I and all the servants were told to
                          cross the bridge and go down the track out of sight. The Game Scouts remained on the
                          river bank on the far side of the bridge and stood ready for emergencies. As I walked
                          along anxiously listening, I was horrified to hear the lorry come to a stop on the bridge.
                          There was a loud creaking noise and I instantly visualised the lorry slowly toppling over
                          into the deep crocodile infested river. The engine restarted, the lorry crossed the bridge
                          and came slowly into sight around the bend. My heart slid back into its normal position.
                          George was as imperturbable as ever and simply remarked that it had been a near
                          thing and that we would return to Lyamungu by another route.

                          Beyond the green river belt the very rutted track ran through very uninteresting
                          thorn bush country. Henry was bored and tiresome, jumping up and down on my knee
                          and yelling furiously. “Teeth”, said I apologetically to George, rashly handing a match
                          box to Henry to keep him quiet. No use at all! With a fat finger he poked out the tray
                          spilling the matches all over me and the floor. Within seconds Henry had torn the
                          matchbox to pieces with his teeth and flung the battered remains through the window.
                          An empty cigarette box met with the same fate as the match box and the yells
                          continued unabated until Henry slept from sheer exhaustion. George gave me a smile,
                          half sympathetic and half sardonic, “Enjoying the safari, my love?” he enquired. On these
                          trying occasions George has the inestimable advantage of being able to go into a Yogilike
                          trance, whereas I become irritated to screaming point.

                          In an effort to prolong Henry’s slumber I braced my feet against the floor boards
                          and tried to turn myself into a human shock absorber as we lurched along the eroded
                          track. Several times my head made contact with the bolt of a rifle in the rack above, and
                          once I felt I had shattered my knee cap against the fire extinguisher in a bracket under the
                          dash board.

                          Strange as it may seem, I really was enjoying the trip in spite of these
                          discomforts. At last after three years I was once more on safari with George. This type of
                          country was new to me and there was so much to see We passed a family of giraffe
                          standing in complete immobility only a few yards from the track. Little dick-dick. one of the smallest of the antelope, scuttled in pairs across the road and that afternoon I had my first view of Gerenuk, curious red brown antelope with extremely elongated legs and giraffe-like necks.

                          Most interesting of all was my first sight of Masai at home. We could hear a tuneful
                          jangle of cattle bells and suddenly came across herds of humped cattle browsing upon
                          the thorn bushes. The herds were guarded by athletic,striking looking Masai youths and men.
                          Each had a calabash of water slung over his shoulder and a tall, highly polished spear in his
                          hand. These herdsmen were quite unselfconscious though they wore no clothing except for one carelessly draped blanket. Very few gave us any greeting but glanced indifferently at us from under fringes of clay-daubed plaited hair . The rest of their hair was drawn back behind the ears to display split earlobes stretched into slender loops by the weight of heavy brass or copper tribal ear rings.

                          Most of the villages were set well back in the bush out of sight of the road but we did pass one
                          typical village which looked most primitive indeed. It consisted simply of a few mound like mud huts which were entirely covered with a plaster of mud and cattle dung and the whole clutch of huts were surrounded by a ‘boma’ of thorn to keep the cattle in at night and the lions out. There was a gathering of women and children on the road at this point. The children of both sexes were naked and unadorned, but the women looked very fine indeed. This is not surprising for they have little to do but adorn themselves, unlike their counterparts of other tribes who have to work hard cultivating the fields. The Masai women, and others I saw on safari, were far more amiable and cheerful looking than the men and were well proportioned.

                          They wore skirts of dressed goat skin, knee length in front but ankle length behind. Their arms
                          from elbow to wrist, and legs from knee to ankle, were encased in tight coils of copper and
                          galvanised wire. All had their heads shaved and in some cases bound by a leather band
                          embroidered in red white and blue beads. Circular ear rings hung from slit earlobes and their
                          handsome throats were encircled by stiff wire necklaces strung with brightly coloured beads. These
                          necklaces were carefully graded in size and formed deep collars almost covering their breasts.
                          About a quarter of a mile further along the road we met eleven young braves in gala attire, obviously on their way to call on the girls. They formed a line across the road and danced up and down until the lorry was dangerously near when they parted and grinned cheerfully at us. These were the only cheerful
                          looking male Masai that I saw. Like the herdsmen these youths wore only a blanket, but their
                          blankets were ochre colour, and elegantly draped over their backs. Their naked bodies gleamed with oil. Several had painted white stripes on their faces, and two had whitewashed their faces entirely which I
                          thought a pity. All had their long hair elaborately dressed and some carried not only one,
                          but two gleaming spears.

                          By mid day George decided that we had driven far enough for that day. He
                          stopped the lorry and consulted a rather unreliable map. “Somewhere near here is a
                          place called Lolbeni,” he said. “The name means Sweet Water, I hear that the
                          government have piped spring water down from the mountain into a small dam at which
                          the Masai water their cattle.” Lolbeni sounded pleasant to me. Henry was dusty and
                          cross, the rubber sheet had long slipped from my lap to the floor and I was conscious of
                          a very damp lap. ‘Sweet Waters’ I felt, would put all that right. A few hundred yards
                          away a small herd of cattle was grazing, so George lit his pipe and relaxed at last, whilst
                          a Game Scout went off to find the herdsman. The scout soon returned with an ancient
                          and emaciated Masai who was thrilled at the prospect of his first ride in a lorry and
                          offered to direct us to Lolbeni which was off the main track and about four miles away.

                          Once Lolbeni had been a small administrative post and a good track had
                          led to it, but now the Post had been abandoned and the road is dotted with vigourous
                          thorn bushes and the branches of larger thorn trees encroach on the track The road had
                          deteriorated to a mere cattle track, deeply rutted and eroded by heavy rains over a
                          period of years. The great Ford truck, however, could take it. It lurched victoriously along,
                          mowing down the obstructions, tearing off branches from encroaching thorn trees with its
                          high railed sides, spanning gorges in the track, and climbing in and out of those too wide
                          to span. I felt an army tank could not have done better.

                          I had expected Lolbeni to be a green oasis in a desert of grey thorns, but I was
                          quickly disillusioned. To be sure the thorn trees were larger and more widely spaced and
                          provided welcome shade, but the ground under the trees had been trampled by thousands of cattle into a dreary expanse of dirty grey sand liberally dotted with cattle droppings and made still more uninviting by the bleached bones of dead beasts.

                          To the right of this waste rose a high green hill which gave the place its name and from which
                          the precious water was piped, but its slopes were too steep to provide a camping site.
                          Flies swarmed everywhere and I was most relieved when George said that we would
                          stay only long enough to fill our cans with water. Even the water was a disappointment!
                          The water in the small dam was low and covered by a revolting green scum, and though
                          the water in the feeding pipe was sweet, it trickled so feebly that it took simply ages to
                          fill a four gallon can.

                          However all these disappointments were soon forgotten for we drove away
                          from the flies and dirt and trampled sand and soon, with their quiet efficiency, George
                          and his men set up a comfortable camp. John and Jim immediately started digging
                          operations in the sandy soil whilst Henry and I rested. After tea George took his shot
                          gun and went off to shoot guinea fowl and partridges for the pot. The children and I went
                          walking, keeping well in site of camp, and soon we saw a very large flock of Vulturine
                          Guineafowl, running aimlessly about and looking as tame as barnyard fowls, but melting
                          away as soon as we moved in their direction.

                          We had our second quiet and lovely evening by the camp fire, followed by a
                          peaceful night.

                          We left Lolbeni very early next morning, which was a good thing, for as we left
                          camp the herds of thirsty cattle moved in from all directions. They were accompanied by
                          Masai herdsmen, their naked bodies and blankets now covered by volcanic dust which
                          was being stirred in rising clouds of stifling ash by the milling cattle, and also by grey
                          donkeys laden with panniers filled with corked calabashes for water.

                          Our next stop was Nabarera, a Masai cattle market and trading centre, where we
                          reluctantly stayed for two days in a pokey Goverment Resthouse because George had
                          a job to do in that area. The rest was good for Henry who promptly produced a tooth
                          and was consequently much better behaved for the rest of the trip. George was away in the bush most of the day but he returned for afternoon tea and later took the children out
                          walking. We had noticed curious white dumps about a quarter mile from the resthouse
                          and on the second afternoon we set out to investigate them. Behind the dumps we
                          found passages about six foot wide, cut through solid limestone. We explored two of
                          these and found that both passages led steeply down to circular wells about two and a
                          half feet in diameter.

                          At the very foot of each passage, beside each well, rough drinking troughs had
                          been cut in the stone. The herdsmen haul the water out of the well in home made hide
                          buckets, the troughs are filled and the cattle driven down the ramps to drink at the trough.
                          It was obvious that the wells were ancient and the sloping passages new. George tells
                          me that no one knows what ancient race dug the original wells. It seems incredible that
                          these deep and narrow shafts could have been sunk without machinery. I craned my
                          neck and looked above one well and could see an immensely long shaft reaching up to
                          ground level. Small footholds were cut in the solid rock as far as I could see.
                          It seems that the Masai are as ignorant as ourselves about the origin of these
                          wells. They do say however that when their forebears first occupied what is now known
                          as Masailand, they not only found the Wanderobo tribe in the area but also a light
                          skinned people and they think it possible that these light skinned people dug the wells.
                          These people disappeared. They may have been absorbed or, more likely, they were
                          liquidated.

                          The Masai had found the well impractical in their original form and had hired
                          labourers from neighbouring tribes to cut the passages to water level. Certainly the Masai are not responsible for the wells. They are a purely pastoral people and consider manual labour extremely degrading.

                          They live chiefly on milk from their herd which they allow to go sour, and mix with blood that has been skilfully tapped from the necks of living cattle. They do not eat game meat, nor do they cultivate any
                          land. They hunt with spears, but hunt only lions, to protect their herds, and to test the skill
                          and bravery of their young warriors. What little grain they do eat is transported into
                          Masailand by traders. The next stage of our journey took us to Ngassamet where
                          George was to pick up some elephant tusks. I had looked forward particularly to this
                          stretch of road for I had heard that there was a shallow lake at which game congregates,
                          and at which I had great hopes of seeing elephants. We had come too late in the
                          season though, the lake was dry and there were only piles of elephant droppings to
                          prove that elephant had recently been there in numbers. Ngassamet, though no beauty
                          spot, was interesting. We saw more elaborate editions of the wells already described, and as this area
                          is rich in cattle we saw the aristocrats of the Masai. You cannot conceive of a more arrogant looking male than a young Masai brave striding by on sandalled feet, unselfconscious in all his glory. All the young men wore the casually draped traditional ochre blanket and carried one or more spears. But here belts and long knife sheaths of scarlet leather seem to be the fashion. Here fringes do not seem to be the thing. Most of these young Masai had their hair drawn smoothly back and twisted in a pointed queue, the whole plastered with a smooth coating of red clay. Some tied their horn shaped queues over their heads
                          so that the tip formed a deep Satanic peak on the brow. All these young men wore the traditional
                          copper earrings and I saw one or two with copper bracelets and one with a necklace of brightly coloured
                          beads.

                          It so happened that, on the day of our visit to Ngassamet, there had been a
                          baraza (meeting) which was attended by all the local headmen and elders. These old
                          men came to pay their respects to George and a more shrewd and rascally looking
                          company I have never seen, George told me that some of these men own up to three
                          thousand head of cattle and more. The chief was as fat and Rabelasian as his second in
                          command was emaciated, bucktoothed and prim. The Chief shook hands with George
                          and greeted me and settled himself on the wall of the resthouse porch opposite
                          George. The lesser headmen, after politely greeting us, grouped themselves in a
                          semi circle below the steps with their ‘aides’ respectfully standing behind them. I
                          remained sitting in the only chair and watched the proceedings with interest and
                          amusement.

                          These old Masai, I noticed, cared nothing for adornment. They had proved
                          themselves as warriors in the past and were known to be wealthy and influential so did
                          not need to make any display. Most of them had their heads comfortably shaved and
                          wore only a drab blanket or goatskin cloak. Their only ornaments were earrings whose
                          effect was somewhat marred by the serviceable and homely large safety pin that
                          dangled from the lobe of one ear. All carried staves instead of spears and all, except for
                          Buckteeth and one blind old skeleton of a man, appeared to have a keenly developed
                          sense of humour.

                          “Mummy?” asked John in an urgent whisper, “Is that old blind man nearly dead?”
                          “Yes dear”, said I, “I expect he’ll soon die.” “What here?” breathed John in a tone of
                          keen anticipation and, until the meeting broke up and the old man left, he had John’s
                          undivided attention.

                          After local news and the game situation had been discussed, the talk turned to the
                          war. “When will the war end?” moaned the fat Chief. “We have made great gifts of cattle
                          to the War Funds, we are taxed out of existence.” George replied with the Ki-Swahili
                          equivalent of ‘Sez you!’. This sally was received with laughter and the old fellows rose to
                          go. They made their farewells and dignified exits, pausing on their way to stare at our
                          pink and white Henry, who sat undismayed in his push chair giving them stare for stare
                          from his striking grey eyes.

                          Towards evening some Masai, prompted no doubt by our native servants,
                          brought a sheep for sale. It was the last night of the fast of Ramadan and our
                          Mohammedan boys hoped to feast next day at our expense. Their faces fell when
                          George refused to buy the animal. “Why should I pay fifteen shillings for a sheep?” he
                          asked, “Am I not the Bwana Nyama and is not the bush full of my sheep?” (Bwana
                          Nyama is the native name for a Game Ranger, but means literally, ‘Master of the meat’)
                          George meant that he would shoot a buck for the men next day, but this incident was to
                          have a strange sequel. Ngassamet resthouse consists of one room so small we could
                          not put up all our camp beds and George and I slept on the cement floor which was
                          unkind to my curves. The night was bitterly cold and all night long hyaenas screeched
                          hideously outside. So we rose at dawn without reluctance and were on our way before it
                          was properly light.

                          George had decided that it would be foolhardy to return home by our outward
                          route as he did not care to risk another crossing of the suspension bridge. So we
                          returned to Nabarera and there turned onto a little used track which would eventually take
                          us to the Great North Road a few miles South of Arusha. There was not much game
                          about but I saw Oryx which I had not previously seen. Soon it grew intolerably hot and I
                          think all of us but George were dozing when he suddenly stopped the lorry and pointed
                          to the right. “Mpishi”, he called to the cook, “There’s your sheep!” True enough, on that
                          dreary thorn covered plain,with not another living thing in sight, stood a fat black sheep.

                          There was an incredulous babbling from the back of the lorry. Every native
                          jumped to the ground and in no time at all the wretched sheep was caught and
                          slaughtered. I felt sick. “Oh George”, I wailed, “The poor lost sheep! I shan’t eat a scrap
                          of it.” George said nothing but went and had a look at the sheep and called out to me,
                          “Come and look at it. It was kindness to kill the poor thing, the vultures have been at it
                          already and the hyaenas would have got it tonight.” I went reluctantly and saw one eye
                          horribly torn out, and small deep wounds on the sheep’s back where the beaks of the
                          vultures had cut through the heavy fleece. Poor thing! I went back to the lorry more
                          determined than ever not to eat mutton on that trip. The Scouts and servants had no
                          such scruples. The fine fat sheep had been sent by Allah for their feast day and that was
                          the end of it.

                          “ ‘Mpishi’ is more convinced than ever that I am a wizard”, said George in
                          amusement as he started the lorry. I knew what he meant. Several times before George
                          had foretold something which had later happened. Pure coincidence, but strange enough
                          to give rise to a legend that George had the power to arrange things. “What happened
                          of course”, explained George, “Is that a flock of Masai sheep was driven to market along
                          this track yesterday or the day before. This one strayed and was not missed.”

                          The day grew hotter and hotter and for long miles we looked out for a camping
                          spot but could find little shade and no trace of water anywhere. At last, in the early
                          afternoon we reached another pokey little rest house and asked for water. “There is no
                          water here,” said the native caretaker. “Early in the morning there is water in a well nearby
                          but we are allowed only one kerosene tin full and by ten o’clock the well is dry.” I looked
                          at George in dismay for we were all so tired and dusty. “Where do the Masai from the
                          village water their cattle then?” asked George. “About two miles away through the bush.
                          If you take me with you I shall show you”, replied the native.

                          So we turned off into the bush and followed a cattle track even more tortuous than
                          the one to Lolbeni. Two Scouts walked ahead to warn us of hazards and I stretched my
                          arm across the open window to fend off thorns. Henry screamed with fright and hunger.
                          But George’s efforts to reach water went unrewarded as we were brought to a stop by
                          a deep donga. The native from the resthouse was apologetic. He had mistaken the
                          path, perhaps if we turned back we might find it. George was beyond speech. We
                          lurched back the way we had come and made our camp under the first large tree we
                          could find. Then off went our camp boys on foot to return just before dark with the water.
                          However they were cheerful for there was an unlimited quantity of dry wood for their fires
                          and meat in plenty for their feast. Long after George and I left our campfire and had gone
                          to bed, we could see the cheerful fires of the boys and hear their chatter and laughter.
                          I woke in the small hours to hear the insane cackling of hyaenas gloating over a
                          find. Later I heard scuffling around the camp table, I peered over the tailboard of the lorry
                          and saw George come out of his tent. What are you doing?” I whispered. “Looking for
                          something to throw at those bloody hyaenas,” answered George for all the world as
                          though those big brutes were tomcats on the prowl. Though the hyaenas kept up their
                          concert all night the children never stirred, nor did any of them wake at night throughout
                          the safari.

                          Early next morning I walked across to the camp kitchen to enquire into the loud
                          lamentations coming from that quarter. “Oh Memsahib”, moaned the cook, “We could
                          not sleep last night for the bad hyaenas round our tents. They have taken every scrap of
                          meat we had left over from the feast., even the meat we had left to smoke over the fire.”
                          Jim, who of our three young sons is the cook’s favourite commiserated with him. He said
                          in Ki-Swahili, which he speaks with great fluency, “Truly those hyaenas are very bad
                          creatures. They also robbed us. They have taken my hat from the table and eaten the
                          new soap from the washbowl.

                          Our last day in the bush was a pleasantly lazy one. We drove through country
                          that grew more open and less dry as we approached Arusha. We pitched our camp
                          near a large dam, and the water was a blessed sight after a week of scorched country.
                          On the plains to the right of our camp was a vast herd of native cattle enjoying a brief
                          rest after their long day trek through Masailand. They were destined to walk many more
                          weary miles before reaching their destination, a meat canning factory in Kenya.
                          The ground to the left of the camp rose gently to form a long low hill and on the
                          grassy slopes we could see wild ostriches and herds of wildebeest, zebra and
                          antelope grazing amicably side by side. In the late afternoon I watched the groups of
                          zebra and wildebeest merge into one. Then with a wildebeest leading, they walked
                          down the slope in single file to drink at the vlei . When they were satisfied, a wildebeest
                          once more led the herd up the trail. The others followed in a long and orderly file, and
                          vanished over the hill to their evening pasture.

                          When they had gone, George took up his shotgun and invited John to
                          accompany him to the dam to shoot duck. This was the first time John had acted as
                          retriever but he did very well and proudly helped to carry a mixed bag of sand grouse
                          and duck back to camp.

                          Next morning we turned into the Great North Road and passed first through
                          carefully tended coffee shambas and then through the township of Arusha, nestling at
                          the foot of towering Mount Meru. Beyond Arusha we drove through the Usa River
                          settlement where again coffee shambas and European homesteads line the road, and
                          saw before us the magnificent spectacle of Kilimanjaro unveiled, its white snow cap
                          gleaming in the sunlight. Before mid day we were home. “Well was it worth it?” enquired
                          George at lunch. “Lovely,” I replied. ”Let’s go again soon.” Then thinking regretfully of
                          our absent children I sighed, “If only Ann, George, and Kate could have gone with us
                          too.”

                          Lyamungu 10th November. 1944

                          Dearest Family.

                          Mummy wants to know how I fill in my time with George away on safari for weeks
                          on end. I do believe that you all picture me idling away my days, waited on hand and
                          foot by efficient servants! On the contrary, life is one rush and the days never long
                          enough.

                          To begin with, our servants are anything but efficient, apart from our cook, Hamisi
                          Issa, who really is competent. He suffers from frustration because our budget will not run
                          to elaborate dishes so there is little scope for his culinary art. There is one masterpiece
                          which is much appreciated by John and Jim. Hamisi makes a most realistic crocodile out
                          of pastry and stuffs its innards with minced meat. This revolting reptile is served on a
                          bed of parsley on my largest meat dish. The cook is a strict Mohammedan and
                          observes all the fasts and daily prayers and, like all Mohammedans he is very clean in
                          his person and, thank goodness, in the kitchen.

                          His wife is his pride and joy but not his helpmate. She does absolutely nothing
                          but sit in a chair in the sun all day, sipping tea and smoking cigarettes – a more
                          expensive brand than mine! It is Hamisi who sweeps out their quarters, cooks
                          delectable curries for her, and spends more than he can afford on clothing and trinkets for
                          his wife. She just sits there with her ‘Mona Lisa’ smile and her painted finger and toe
                          nails, doing absolutely nothing.

                          The thing is that natives despise women who do work and this applies especially
                          to their white employers. House servants much prefer a Memsahib who leaves
                          everything to them and is careless about locking up her pantry. When we first came to
                          Lyamungu I had great difficulty in employing a houseboy. A couple of rather efficient
                          ones did approach me but when they heard the wages I was prepared to pay and that
                          there was no number 2 boy, they simply were not interested. Eventually I took on a
                          local boy called Japhet who suits me very well except that his sight is not good and he
                          is extremely hard on the crockery. He tells me that he has lost face by working here
                          because his friends say that he works for a family that is too mean to employ a second
                          boy. I explained that with our large family we simply cannot afford to pay more, but this
                          didn’t register at all. Japhet says “But Wazungu (Europeans) all have money. They just
                          have to get it from the Bank.”

                          The third member of our staff is a strapping youth named Tovelo who helps both
                          cook and boy, and consequently works harder than either. What do I do? I chivvy the
                          servants, look after the children, supervise John’s lessons, and make all my clothing and
                          the children’s on that blessed old hand sewing machine.

                          The folk on this station entertain a good deal but we usually decline invitations
                          because we simply cannot afford to reciprocate. However, last Saturday night I invited
                          two couples to drinks and dinner. This was such an unusual event that the servants and I
                          were thrown into a flurry. In the end the dinner went off well though it ended in disaster. In
                          spite of my entreaties and exhortations to Japhet not to pile everything onto the tray at
                          once when clearing the table, he did just that. We were starting our desert and I was
                          congratulating myself that all had gone well when there was a frightful crash of breaking
                          china on the back verandah. I excused myself and got up to investigate. A large meat
                          dish, six dinner plates and four vegetable dishes lay shattered on the cement floor! I
                          controlled my tongue but what my eyes said to Japhet is another matter. What he said
                          was, “It is not my fault Memsahib. The handle of the tray came off.”

                          It is a curious thing about native servants that they never accept responsibility for
                          a mishap. If they cannot pin their misdeeds onto one of their fellow servants then the responsibility rests with God. ‘Shauri ya Mungu’, (an act of God) is a familiar cry. Fatalists
                          can be very exasperating employees.

                          The loss of my dinner service is a real tragedy because, being war time, one can
                          buy only china of the poorest quality made for the native trade. Nor was that the final
                          disaster of the evening. When we moved to the lounge for coffee I noticed that the
                          coffee had been served in the battered old safari coffee pot instead of the charming little
                          antique coffee pot which my Mother-in-law had sent for our tenth wedding anniversary.
                          As there had already been a disturbance I made no comment but resolved to give the
                          cook a piece of my mind in the morning. My instructions to the cook had been to warm
                          the coffee pot with hot water immediately before serving. On no account was he to put
                          the pewter pot on the hot iron stove. He did and the result was a small hole in the base
                          of the pot – or so he says. When I saw the pot next morning there was a two inch hole in
                          it.

                          Hamisi explained placidly how this had come about. He said he knew I would be
                          mad when I saw the little hole so he thought he would have it mended and I might not
                          notice it. Early in the morning he had taken the pewter pot to the mechanic who looks
                          after the Game Department vehicles and had asked him to repair it. The bright individual
                          got busy with the soldering iron with the most devastating result. “It’s his fault,” said
                          Hamisi, “He is a mechanic, he should have known what would happen.”
                          One thing is certain, there will be no more dinner parties in this house until the war
                          is ended.

                          The children are well and so am I, and so was George when he left on his safari
                          last Monday.

                          Much love,
                          Eleanor.

                           

                          #6266
                          TracyTracy
                          Participant

                            From Tanganyika with Love

                            continued part 7

                            With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                            Oldeani Hospital. 19th September 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            George arrived today to take us home to Mbulu but Sister Marianne will not allow
                            me to travel for another week as I had a bit of a set back after baby’s birth. At first I was
                            very fit and on the third day Sister stripped the bed and, dictionary in hand, started me
                            off on ante natal exercises. “Now make a bridge Mrs Rushby. So. Up down, up down,’
                            whilst I obediently hoisted myself aloft on heels and head. By the sixth day she
                            considered it was time for me to be up and about but alas, I soon had to return to bed
                            with a temperature and a haemorrhage. I got up and walked outside for the first time this
                            morning.

                            I have had lots of visitors because the local German settlers seem keen to see
                            the first British baby born in the hospital. They have been most kind, sending flowers
                            and little German cards of congratulations festooned with cherubs and rather sweet. Most
                            of the women, besides being pleasant, are very smart indeed, shattering my illusion that
                            German matrons are invariably fat and dowdy. They are all much concerned about the
                            Czecko-Slovakian situation, especially Sister Marianne whose home is right on the
                            border and has several relations who are Sudentan Germans. She is ant-Nazi and
                            keeps on asking me whether I think England will declare war if Hitler invades Czecko-
                            Slovakia, as though I had inside information.

                            George tells me that he has had a grass ‘banda’ put up for us at Mbulu as we are
                            both determined not to return to those prison-like quarters in the Fort. Sister Marianne is
                            horrified at the idea of taking a new baby to live in a grass hut. She told George,
                            “No,No,Mr Rushby. I find that is not to be allowed!” She is an excellent Sister but rather
                            prim and George enjoys teasing her. This morning he asked with mock seriousness,
                            “Sister, why has my wife not received her medal?” Sister fluttered her dictionary before
                            asking. “What medal Mr Rushby”. “Why,” said George, “The medal that Hitler gives to
                            women who have borne four children.” Sister started a long and involved explanation
                            about the medal being only for German mothers whilst George looked at me and
                            grinned.

                            Later. Great Jubilation here. By the noise in Sister Marianne’s sitting room last night it
                            sounded as though the whole German population had gathered to listen to the wireless
                            news. I heard loud exclamations of joy and then my bedroom door burst open and
                            several women rushed in. “Thank God “, they cried, “for Neville Chamberlain. Now there
                            will be no war.” They pumped me by the hand as though I were personally responsible
                            for the whole thing.

                            George on the other hand is disgusted by Chamberlain’s lack of guts. Doesn’t
                            know what England is coming to these days. I feel too content to concern myself with
                            world affairs. I have a fine husband and four wonderful children and am happy, happy,
                            happy.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mbulu. 30th September 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Here we are, comfortably installed in our little green house made of poles and
                            rushes from a nearby swamp. The house has of course, no doors or windows, but
                            there are rush blinds which roll up in the day time. There are two rooms and a little porch
                            and out at the back there is a small grass kitchen.

                            Here we have the privacy which we prize so highly as we are screened on one
                            side by a Forest Department plantation and on the other three sides there is nothing but
                            the rolling countryside cropped bare by the far too large herds of cattle and goats of the
                            Wambulu. I have a lovely lazy time. I still have Kesho-Kutwa and the cook we brought
                            with us from the farm. They are both faithful and willing souls though not very good at
                            their respective jobs. As one of these Mbeya boys goes on safari with George whose
                            job takes him from home for three weeks out of four, I have taken on a local boy to cut
                            firewood and heat my bath water and generally make himself useful. His name is Saa,
                            which means ‘Clock’

                            We had an uneventful but very dusty trip from Oldeani. Johnny Jo travelled in his
                            pram in the back of the boxbody and got covered in dust but seems none the worst for
                            it. As the baby now takes up much of my time and Kate was showing signs of
                            boredom, I have engaged a little African girl to come and play with Kate every morning.
                            She is the daughter of the head police Askari and a very attractive and dignified little
                            person she is. Her name is Kajyah. She is scrupulously clean, as all Mohammedan
                            Africans seem to be. Alas, Kajyah, though beautiful, is a bore. She simply does not
                            know how to play, so they just wander around hand in hand.

                            There are only two drawbacks to this little house. Mbulu is a very windy spot so
                            our little reed house is very draughty. I have made a little tent of sheets in one corner of
                            the ‘bedroom’ into which I can retire with Johnny when I wish to bathe or sponge him.
                            The other drawback is that many insects are attracted at night by the lamp and make it
                            almost impossible to read or sew and they have a revolting habit of falling into the soup.
                            There are no dangerous wild animals in this area so I am not at all nervous in this
                            flimsy little house when George is on safari. Most nights hyaenas come around looking
                            for scraps but our dogs, Fanny and Paddy, soon see them off.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mbulu. 25th October 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Great news! a vacancy has occurred in the Game Department. George is to
                            transfer to it next month. There will be an increase in salary and a brighter prospect for
                            the future. It will mean a change of scene and I shall be glad of that. We like Mbulu and
                            the people here but the rains have started and our little reed hut is anything but water
                            tight.

                            Before the rain came we had very unpleasant dust storms. I think I told you that
                            this is a treeless area and the grass which normally covers the veldt has been cropped
                            to the roots by the hungry native cattle and goats. When the wind blows the dust
                            collects in tall black columns which sweep across the country in a most spectacular
                            fashion. One such dust devil struck our hut one day whilst we were at lunch. George
                            swept Kate up in a second and held her face against his chest whilst I rushed to Johnny
                            Jo who was asleep in his pram, and stooped over the pram to protect him. The hut
                            groaned and creaked and clouds of dust blew in through the windows and walls covering
                            our persons, food, and belongings in a black pall. The dogs food bowls and an empty
                            petrol tin outside the hut were whirled up and away. It was all over in a moment but you
                            should have seen what a family of sweeps we looked. George looked at our blackened
                            Johnny and mimicked in Sister Marianne’s primmest tones, “I find that this is not to be
                            allowed.”

                            The first rain storm caught me unprepared when George was away on safari. It
                            was a terrific thunderstorm. The quite violent thunder and lightening were followed by a
                            real tropical downpour. As the hut is on a slight slope, the storm water poured through
                            the hut like a river, covering the entire floor, and the roof leaked like a lawn sprinkler.
                            Johnny Jo was snug enough in the pram with the hood raised, but Kate and I had a
                            damp miserable night. Next morning I had deep drains dug around the hut and when
                            George returned from safari he managed to borrow an enormous tarpaulin which is now
                            lashed down over the roof.

                            It did not rain during the next few days George was home but the very next night
                            we were in trouble again. I was awakened by screams from Kate and hurriedly turned up
                            the lamp to see that we were in the midst of an invasion of siafu ants. Kate’s bed was
                            covered in them. Others appeared to be raining down from the thatch. I quickly stripped
                            Kate and carried her across to my bed, whilst I rushed to the pram to see whether
                            Johnny Jo was all right. He was fast asleep, bless him, and slept on through all the
                            commotion, whilst I struggled to pick all the ants out of Kate’s hair, stopping now and
                            again to attend to my own discomfort. These ants have a painful bite and seem to
                            choose all the most tender spots. Kate fell asleep eventually but I sat up for the rest of
                            the night to make sure that the siafu kept clear of the children. Next morning the servants
                            dispersed them by laying hot ash.

                            In spite of the dampness of the hut both children are blooming. Kate has rosy
                            cheeks and Johnny Jo now has a fuzz of fair hair and has lost his ‘old man’ look. He
                            reminds me of Ann at his age.

                            Eleanor.

                            Iringa. 30th November 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Here we are back in the Southern Highlands and installed on the second floor of
                            another German Fort. This one has been modernised however and though not so
                            romantic as the Mbulu Fort from the outside, it is much more comfortable.We are all well
                            and I am really proud of our two safari babies who stood up splendidly to a most trying
                            journey North from Mbulu to Arusha and then South down the Great North Road to
                            Iringa where we expect to stay for a month.

                            At Arusha George reported to the headquarters of the Game Department and
                            was instructed to come on down here on Rinderpest Control. There is a great flap on in
                            case the rinderpest spread to Northern Rhodesia and possibly onwards to Southern
                            Rhodesia and South Africa. Extra veterinary officers have been sent to this area to
                            inoculate all the cattle against the disease whilst George and his African game Scouts will
                            comb the bush looking for and destroying diseased game. If the rinderpest spreads,
                            George says it may be necessary to shoot out all the game in a wide belt along the
                            border between the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and Northern Rhodesia, to
                            prevent the disease spreading South. The very idea of all this destruction sickens us
                            both.

                            George left on a foot safari the day after our arrival and I expect I shall be lucky if I
                            see him occasionally at weekends until this job is over. When rinderpest is under control
                            George is to be stationed at a place called Nzassa in the Eastern Province about 18
                            miles from Dar es Salaam. George’s orderly, who is a tall, cheerful Game Scout called
                            Juma, tells me that he has been stationed at Nzassa and it is a frightful place! However I
                            refuse to be depressed. I now have the cheering prospect of leave to England in thirty
                            months time when we will be able to fetch Ann and George and be a proper family
                            again. Both Ann and George look happy in the snapshots which mother-in-law sends
                            frequently. Ann is doing very well at school and loves it.

                            To get back to our journey from Mbulu. It really was quite an experience. It
                            poured with rain most of the way and the road was very slippery and treacherous the
                            120 miles between Mbulu and Arusha. This is a little used earth road and the drains are
                            so blocked with silt as to be practically non existent. As usual we started our move with
                            the V8 loaded to capacity. I held Johnny on my knee and Kate squeezed in between
                            George and me. All our goods and chattels were in wooden boxes stowed in the back
                            and the two houseboys and the two dogs had to adjust themselves to the space that
                            remained. We soon ran into trouble and it took us all day to travel 47 miles. We stuck
                            several times in deep mud and had some most nasty skids. I simply clutched Kate in
                            one hand and Johnny Jo in the other and put my trust in George who never, under any
                            circumstances, loses his head. Poor Johnny only got his meals when circumstances
                            permitted. Unfortunately I had put him on a bottle only a few days before we left Mbulu
                            and, as I was unable to buy either a primus stove or Thermos flask there we had to
                            make a fire and boil water for each meal. Twice George sat out in the drizzle with a rain
                            coat rapped over his head to protect a miserable little fire of wet sticks drenched with
                            paraffin. Whilst we waited for the water to boil I pacified John by letting him suck a cube
                            of Tate and Lyles sugar held between my rather grubby fingers. Not at all according to
                            the book.

                            That night George, the children and I slept in the car having dumped our boxes
                            and the two servants in a deserted native hut. The rain poured down relentlessly all night
                            and by morning the road was more of a morass than ever. We swerved and skidded
                            alarmingly till eventually one of the wheel chains broke and had to be tied together with
                            string which constantly needed replacing. George was so patient though he was wet
                            and muddy and tired and both children were very good. Shortly before reaching the Great North Road we came upon Jack Gowan, the Stock Inspector from Mbulu. His car
                            was bogged down to its axles in black mud. He refused George’s offer of help saying
                            that he had sent his messenger to a nearby village for help.

                            I hoped that conditions would be better on the Great North Road but how over
                            optimistic I was. For miles the road runs through a belt of ‘black cotton soil’. which was
                            churned up into the consistency of chocolate blancmange by the heavy lorry traffic which
                            runs between Dodoma and Arusha. Soon the car was skidding more fantastically than
                            ever. Once it skidded around in a complete semi circle so George decided that it would
                            be safer for us all to walk whilst he negotiated the very bad patches. You should have
                            seen me plodding along in the mud and drizzle with the baby in one arm and Kate
                            clinging to the other. I was terrified of slipping with Johnny. Each time George reached
                            firm ground he would return on foot to carry Kate and in this way we covered many bad
                            patches.We were more fortunate than many other travellers. We passed several lorries
                            ditched on the side of the road and one car load of German men, all elegantly dressed in
                            lounge suits. One was busy with his camera so will have a record of their plight to laugh
                            over in the years to come. We spent another night camping on the road and next day
                            set out on the last lap of the journey. That also was tiresome but much better than the
                            previous day and we made the haven of the Arusha Hotel before dark. What a picture
                            we made as we walked through the hall in our mud splattered clothes! Even Johnny was
                            well splashed with mud but no harm was done and both he and Kate are blooming.
                            We rested for two days at Arusha and then came South to Iringa. Luckily the sun
                            came out and though for the first day the road was muddy it was no longer so slippery
                            and the second day found us driving through parched country and along badly
                            corrugated roads. The further South we came, the warmer the sun which at times blazed
                            through the windscreen and made us all uncomfortably hot. I have described the country
                            between Arusha and Dodoma before so I shan’t do it again. We reached Iringa without
                            mishap and after a good nights rest all felt full of beans.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mchewe Estate, Mbeya. 7th January 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            You will be surprised to note that we are back on the farm! At least the children
                            and I are here. George is away near the Rhodesian border somewhere, still on
                            Rinderpest control.

                            I had a pleasant time at Iringa, lots of invitations to morning tea and Kate had a
                            wonderful time enjoying the novelty of playing with children of her own age. She is not
                            shy but nevertheless likes me to be within call if not within sight. It was all very suburban
                            but pleasant enough. A few days before Christmas George turned up at Iringa and
                            suggested that, as he would be working in the Mbeya area, it might be a good idea for
                            the children and me to move to the farm. I agreed enthusiastically, completely forgetting
                            that after my previous trouble with the leopard I had vowed to myself that I would never
                            again live alone on the farm.

                            Alas no sooner had we arrived when Thomas, our farm headman, brought the
                            news that there were now two leopards terrorising the neighbourhood, and taking dogs,
                            goats and sheep and chickens. Traps and poisoned bait had been tried in vain and he
                            was sure that the female was the same leopard which had besieged our home before.
                            Other leopards said Thomas, came by stealth but this one advertised her whereabouts
                            in the most brazen manner.

                            George stayed with us on the farm over Christmas and all was quiet at night so I
                            cheered up and took the children for walks along the overgrown farm paths. However on
                            New Years Eve that darned leopard advertised her presence again with the most blood
                            chilling grunts and snarls. Horrible! Fanny and Paddy barked and growled and woke up
                            both children. Kate wept and kept saying, “Send it away mummy. I don’t like it.” Johnny
                            Jo howled in sympathy. What a picnic. So now the whole performance of bodyguards
                            has started again and ‘till George returns we confine our exercise to the garden.
                            Our little house is still cosy and sweet but the coffee plantation looks very
                            neglected. I wish to goodness we could sell it.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 14th February 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            After three months of moving around with two small children it is heavenly to be
                            settled in our own home, even though Nzassa is an isolated spot and has the reputation
                            of being unhealthy.

                            We travelled by car from Mbeya to Dodoma by now a very familiar stretch of
                            country, but from Dodoma to Dar es Salaam by train which made a nice change. We
                            spent two nights and a day in the Splendid Hotel in Dar es Salaam, George had some
                            official visits to make and I did some shopping and we took the children to the beach.
                            The bay is so sheltered that the sea is as calm as a pond and the water warm. It is
                            wonderful to see the sea once more and to hear tugs hooting and to watch the Arab
                            dhows putting out to sea with their oddly shaped sails billowing. I do love the bush, but
                            I love the sea best of all, as you know.

                            We made an early start for Nzassa on the 3rd. For about four miles we bowled
                            along a good road. This brought us to a place called Temeke where George called on
                            the District Officer. His house appears to be the only European type house there. The
                            road between Temeke and the turn off to Nzassa is quite good, but the six mile stretch
                            from the turn off to Nzassa is a very neglected bush road. There is nothing to be seen
                            but the impenetrable bush on both sides with here and there a patch of swampy
                            ground where rice is planted in the wet season.

                            After about six miles of bumpy road we reached Nzassa which is nothing more
                            than a sandy clearing in the bush. Our house however is a fine one. It was originally built
                            for the District Officer and there is a small court house which is now George’s office. The
                            District Officer died of blackwater fever so Nzassa was abandoned as an administrative
                            station being considered too unhealthy for Administrative Officers but suitable as
                            Headquarters for a Game Ranger. Later a bachelor Game Ranger was stationed here
                            but his health also broke down and he has been invalided to England. So now the
                            healthy Rushbys are here and we don’t mean to let the place get us down. So don’t
                            worry.

                            The house consists of three very large and airy rooms with their doors opening
                            on to a wide front verandah which we shall use as a living room. There is also a wide
                            back verandah with a store room at one end and a bathroom at the other. Both
                            verandahs and the end windows of the house are screened my mosquito gauze wire
                            and further protected by a trellis work of heavy expanded metal. Hasmani, the Game
                            Scout, who has been acting as caretaker, tells me that the expanded metal is very
                            necessary because lions often come out of the bush at night and roam around the
                            house. Such a comforting thought!

                            On our very first evening we discovered how necessary the mosquito gauze is.
                            After sunset the air outside is thick with mosquitos from the swamps. About an acre of
                            land has been cleared around the house. This is a sandy waste because there is no
                            water laid on here and absolutely nothing grows here except a rather revolting milky
                            desert bush called ‘Manyara’, and a few acacia trees. A little way from the house there is
                            a patch of citrus trees, grape fruit, I think, but whether they ever bear fruit I don’t know.
                            The clearing is bordered on three sides by dense dusty thorn bush which is
                            ‘lousy with buffalo’ according to George. The open side is the road which leads down to
                            George’s office and the huts for the Game Scouts. Only Hasmani and George’s orderly
                            Juma and their wives and families live there, and the other huts provide shelter for the
                            Game Scouts from the bush who come to Nzassa to collect their pay and for a short
                            rest. I can see that my daily walk will always be the same, down the road to the huts and
                            back! However I don’t mind because it is far too hot to take much exercise.

                            The climate here is really tropical and worse than on the coast because the thick
                            bush cuts us off from any sea breeze. George says it will be cooler when the rains start
                            but just now we literally drip all day. Kate wears nothing but a cotton sun suit, and Johnny
                            a napkin only, but still their little bodies are always moist. I have shorn off all Kate’s lovely
                            shoulder length curls and got George to cut my hair very short too.

                            We simply must buy a refrigerator. The butter, and even the cheese we bought
                            in Dar. simply melted into pools of oil overnight, and all our meat went bad, so we are
                            living out of tins. However once we get organised I shall be quite happy here. I like this
                            spacious house and I have good servants. The cook, Hamisi Issa, is a Swahili from Lindi
                            whom we engaged in Dar es Salaam. He is a very dignified person, and like most
                            devout Mohammedan Cooks, keeps both his person and the kitchen spotless. I
                            engaged the house boy here. He is rather a timid little body but is very willing and quite
                            capable. He has an excessively plain but cheerful wife whom I have taken on as ayah. I
                            do not really need help with the children but feel I must have a woman around just in
                            case I go down with malaria when George is away on safari.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 28th February 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            George’s birthday and we had a special tea party this afternoon which the
                            children much enjoyed. We have our frig now so I am able to make jellies and provide
                            them with really cool drinks.

                            Our very first visitor left this morning after spending only one night here. He is Mr
                            Ionides, the Game Ranger from the Southern Province. He acted as stand in here for a
                            short while after George’s predecessor left for England on sick leave, and where he has
                            since died. Mr Ionides returned here to hand over the range and office formally to
                            George. He seems a strange man and is from all accounts a bit of a hermit. He was at
                            one time an Officer in the Regular Army but does not look like a soldier, he wears the
                            most extraordinary clothes but nevertheless contrives to look top-drawer. He was
                            educated at Rugby and Sandhurst and is, I should say, well read. Ionides told us that he
                            hated Nzassa, particularly the house which he thinks sinister and says he always slept
                            down in the office.

                            The house, or at least one bedroom, seems to have the same effect on Kate.
                            She has been very nervous at night ever since we arrived. At first the children occupied
                            the bedroom which is now George’s. One night, soon after our arrival, Kate woke up
                            screaming to say that ‘something’ had looked at her through the mosquito net. She was
                            in such a hysterical state that inspite of the heat and discomfort I was obliged to crawl into
                            her little bed with her and remained there for the rest of the night.

                            Next night I left a night lamp burning but even so I had to sit by her bed until she
                            dropped off to sleep. Again I was awakened by ear-splitting screams and this time
                            found Kate standing rigid on her bed. I lifted her out and carried her to a chair meaning to
                            comfort her but she screeched louder than ever, “Look Mummy it’s under the bed. It’s
                            looking at us.” In vain I pointed out that there was nothing at all there. By this time
                            George had joined us and he carried Kate off to his bed in the other room whilst I got into
                            Kate’s bed thinking she might have been frightened by a rat which might also disturb
                            Johnny.

                            Next morning our houseboy remarked that he had heard Kate screaming in the
                            night from his room behind the kitchen. I explained what had happened and he must
                            have told the old Scout Hasmani who waylaid me that afternoon and informed me quite
                            seriously that that particular room was haunted by a ‘sheitani’ (devil) who hates children.
                            He told me that whilst he was acting as caretaker before our arrival he one night had his
                            wife and small daughter in the room to keep him company. He said that his small
                            daughter woke up and screamed exactly as Kate had done! Silly coincidence I
                            suppose, but such strange things happen in Africa that I decided to move the children
                            into our room and George sleeps in solitary state in the haunted room! Kate now sleeps
                            peacefully once she goes to sleep but I have to stay with her until she does.

                            I like this house and it does not seem at all sinister to me. As I mentioned before,
                            the rooms are high ceilinged and airy, and have cool cement floors. We have made one
                            end of the enclosed verandah into the living room and the other end is the playroom for
                            the children. The space in between is a sort of no-mans land taken over by the dogs as
                            their special territory.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 25th March 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            George is on safari down in the Rufigi River area. He is away for about three
                            weeks in the month on this job. I do hate to see him go and just manage to tick over until
                            he comes back. But what fun and excitement when he does come home.
                            Usually he returns after dark by which time the children are in bed and I have
                            settled down on the verandah with a book. The first warning is usually given by the
                            dogs, Fanny and her son Paddy. They stir, sit up, look at each other and then go and sit
                            side by side by the door with their noses practically pressed to the mosquito gauze and
                            ears pricked. Soon I can hear the hum of the car, and so can Hasmani, the old Game
                            Scout who sleeps on the back verandah with rifle and ammunition by his side when
                            George is away. When he hears the car he turns up his lamp and hurries out to rouse
                            Juma, the houseboy. Juma pokes up the fire and prepares tea which George always
                            drinks whist a hot meal is being prepared. In the meantime I hurriedly comb my hair and
                            powder my nose so that when the car stops I am ready to rush out and welcome
                            George home. The boy and Hasmani and the garden boy appear to help with the
                            luggage and to greet George and the cook, who always accompanies George on
                            Safari. The home coming is always a lively time with much shouting of greetings.
                            ‘Jambo’, and ‘Habari ya safari’, whilst the dogs, beside themselves with excitement,
                            rush around like lunatics.

                            As though his return were not happiness enough, George usually collects the
                            mail on his way home so there is news of Ann and young George and letters from you
                            and bundles of newspapers and magazines. On the day following his return home,
                            George has to deal with official mail in the office but if the following day is a weekday we
                            all, the house servants as well as ourselves, pile into the boxbody and go to Dar es
                            Salaam. To us this means a mornings shopping followed by an afternoon on the beach.
                            It is a bit cooler now that the rains are on but still very humid. Kate keeps chubby
                            and rosy in spite of the climate but Johnny is too pale though sturdy enough. He is such
                            a good baby which is just as well because Kate is a very demanding little girl though
                            sunny tempered and sweet. I appreciate her company very much when George is
                            away because we are so far off the beaten track that no one ever calls.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 28th April 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            You all seem to wonder how I can stand the loneliness and monotony of living at
                            Nzassa when George is on safari, but really and truly I do not mind. Hamisi the cook
                            always goes on safari with George and then the houseboy Juma takes over the cooking
                            and I do the lighter housework. the children are great company during the day, and when
                            they are settled for the night I sit on the verandah and read or write letters or I just dream.
                            The verandah is entirely enclosed with both wire mosquito gauze and a trellis
                            work of heavy expanded metal, so I am safe from all intruders be they human, animal, or
                            insect. Outside the air is alive with mosquitos and the cicadas keep up their monotonous
                            singing all night long. My only companions on the verandah are the pale ghecco lizards
                            on the wall and the two dogs. Fanny the white bull terrier, lies always near my feet
                            dozing happily, but her son Paddy, who is half Airedale has a less phlegmatic
                            disposition. He sits alert and on guard by the metal trellis work door. Often a lion grunts
                            from the surrounding bush and then his hackles rise and he stands up stiffly with his nose
                            pressed to the door. Old Hasmani from his bedroll on the back verandah, gives a little
                            cough just to show he is awake. Sometimes the lions are very close and then I hear the
                            click of a rifle bolt as Hasmani loads his rifle – but this is usually much later at night when
                            the lights are out. One morning I saw large pug marks between the wall of my bedroom
                            and the garage but I do not fear lions like I did that beastly leopard on the farm.
                            A great deal of witchcraft is still practiced in the bush villages in the
                            neighbourhood. I must tell you about old Hasmani’s baby in connection with this. Last
                            week Hasmani came to me in great distress to say that his baby was ‘Ngongwa sana ‘
                            (very ill) and he thought it would die. I hurried down to the Game Scouts quarters to see
                            whether I could do anything for the child and found the mother squatting in the sun
                            outside her hut with the baby on her lap. The mother was a young woman but not an
                            attractive one. She appeared sullen and indifferent compared with old Hasmani who
                            was very distressed. The child was very feverish and breathing with difficulty and
                            seemed to me to be suffering from bronchitis if not pneumonia. I rubbed his back and
                            chest with camphorated oil and dosed him with aspirin and liquid quinine. I repeated the
                            treatment every four hours, but next day there was no apparent improvement.
                            In the afternoon Hasmani begged me to give him that night off duty and asked for
                            a loan of ten shillings. He explained to me that it seemed to him that the white man’s
                            medicine had failed to cure his child and now he wished to take the child to the local witch
                            doctor. “For ten shillings” said Hasmani, “the Maganga will drive the devil out of my
                            child.” “How?” asked I. “With drums”, said Hasmani confidently. I did not know what to
                            do. I thought the child was too ill to be exposed to the night air, yet I knew that if I
                            refused his request and the child were to die, Hasmani and all the other locals would hold
                            me responsible. I very reluctantly granted his request. I was so troubled by the matter
                            that I sent for George’s office clerk. Daniel, and asked him to accompany Hasmani to the
                            ceremony and to report to me the next morning. It started to rain after dark and all night
                            long I lay awake in bed listening to the drums and the light rain. Next morning when I
                            went out to the kitchen to order breakfast I found a beaming Hasmani awaiting me.
                            “Memsahib”, he said. “My child is well, the fever is now quite gone, the Maganga drove
                            out the devil just as I told you.” Believe it or not, when I hurried to his quarters after
                            breakfast I found the mother suckling a perfectly healthy child! It may be my imagination
                            but I thought the mother looked pretty smug.The clerk Daniel told me that after Hasmani
                            had presented gifts of money and food to the ‘Maganga’, the naked baby was placed
                            on a goat skin near the drums. Most of the time he just lay there but sometimes the witch
                            doctor picked him up and danced with the child in his arms. Daniel seemed reluctant to
                            talk about it. Whatever mumbo jumbo was used all this happened a week ago and the
                            baby has never looked back.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 3rd July 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            Did I tell you that one of George’s Game Scouts was murdered last month in the
                            Maneromango area towards the Rufigi border. He was on routine patrol, with a porter
                            carrying his bedding and food, when they suddenly came across a group of African
                            hunters who were busy cutting up a giraffe which they had just killed. These hunters were
                            all armed with muzzle loaders, spears and pangas, but as it is illegal to kill giraffe without
                            a permit, the Scout went up to the group to take their names. Some argument ensued
                            and the Scout was stabbed.

                            The District Officer went to the area to investigate and decided to call in the Police
                            from Dar es Salaam. A party of police went out to search for the murderers but after
                            some days returned without making any arrests. George was on an elephant control
                            safari in the Bagamoyo District and on his return through Dar es Salaam he heard of the
                            murder. George was furious and distressed to hear the news and called in here for an
                            hour on his way to Maneromango to search for the murderers himself.

                            After a great deal of strenuous investigation he arrested three poachers, put them
                            in jail for the night at Maneromango and then brought them to Dar es Salaam where they
                            are all now behind bars. George will now have to prosecute in the Magistrate’s Court
                            and try and ‘make a case’ so that the prisoners may be committed to the High Court to
                            be tried for murder. George is convinced of their guilt and justifiably proud to have
                            succeeded where the police failed.

                            George had to borrow handcuffs for the prisoners from the Chief at
                            Maneromango and these he brought back to Nzassa after delivering the prisoners to
                            Dar es Salaam so that he may return them to the Chief when he revisits the area next
                            week.

                            I had not seen handcuffs before and picked up a pair to examine them. I said to
                            George, engrossed in ‘The Times’, “I bet if you were arrested they’d never get
                            handcuffs on your wrist. Not these anyway, they look too small.” “Standard pattern,”
                            said George still concentrating on the newspaper, but extending an enormous relaxed
                            left wrist. So, my dears, I put a bracelet round his wrist and as there was a wide gap I
                            gave a hard squeeze with both hands. There was a sharp click as the handcuff engaged
                            in the first notch. George dropped the paper and said, “Now you’ve done it, my love,
                            one set of keys are in the Dar es Salaam Police Station, and the others with the Chief at
                            Maneromango.” You can imagine how utterly silly I felt but George was an angel about it
                            and said as he would have to go to Dar es Salaam we might as well all go.

                            So we all piled into the car, George, the children and I in the front, and the cook
                            and houseboy, immaculate in snowy khanzus and embroidered white caps, a Game
                            Scout and the ayah in the back. George never once complain of the discomfort of the
                            handcuff but I was uncomfortably aware that it was much too tight because his arm
                            above the cuff looked red and swollen and the hand unnaturally pale. As the road is so
                            bad George had to use both hands on the wheel and all the time the dangling handcuff
                            clanked against the dashboard in an accusing way.

                            We drove straight to the Police Station and I could hear the roars of laughter as
                            George explained his predicament. Later I had to put up with a good deal of chaffing
                            and congratulations upon putting the handcuffs on George.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 5th August 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            George made a point of being here for Kate’s fourth birthday last week. Just
                            because our children have no playmates George and I always do all we can to make
                            birthdays very special occasions. We went to Dar es Salaam the day before the
                            birthday and bought Kate a very sturdy tricycle with which she is absolutely delighted.
                            You will be glad to know that your parcels arrived just in time and Kate loved all your
                            gifts especially the little shop from Dad with all the miniature tins and packets of
                            groceries. The tea set was also a great success and is much in use.

                            We had a lively party which ended with George and me singing ‘Happy
                            Birthday to you’, and ended with a wild game with balloons. Kate wore her frilly white net
                            party frock and looked so pretty that it seemed a shame that there was no one but us to
                            see her. Anyway it was a good party. I wish so much that you could see the children.
                            Kate keeps rosy and has not yet had malaria. Johnny Jo is sturdy but pale. He
                            runs a temperature now and again but I am not sure whether this is due to teething or
                            malaria. Both children of course take quinine every day as George and I do. George
                            quite frequently has malaria in spite of prophylactic quinine but this is not surprising as he
                            got the germ thoroughly established in his system in his early elephant hunting days. I
                            get it too occasionally but have not been really ill since that first time a month after my
                            arrival in the country.

                            Johnny is such a good baby. His chief claim to beauty is his head of soft golden
                            curls but these are due to come off on his first birthday as George considers them too
                            girlish. George left on safari the day after the party and the very next morning our wood
                            boy had a most unfortunate accident. He was chopping a rather tough log when a chip
                            flew up and split his upper lip clean through from mouth to nostril exposing teeth and
                            gums. A truly horrible sight and very bloody. I cleaned up the wound as best I could
                            and sent him off to the hospital at Dar es Salaam on the office bicycle. He wobbled
                            away wretchedly down the road with a white cloth tied over his mouth to keep off the
                            dust. He returned next day with his lip stitched and very swollen and bearing a
                            resemblance to my lip that time I used the hair remover.

                            Eleanor.

                            Splendid Hotel. Dar es Salaam 7th September 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            So now another war has started and it has disrupted even our lives. We have left
                            Nzassa for good. George is now a Lieutenant in the King’s African Rifles and the children
                            and I are to go to a place called Morogoro to await further developments.
                            I was glad to read in today’s paper that South Africa has declared war on
                            Germany. I would have felt pretty small otherwise in this hotel which is crammed full of
                            men who have been called up for service in the Army. George seems exhilarated by
                            the prospect of active service. He is bursting out of his uniform ( at the shoulders only!)
                            and all too ready for the fray.

                            The war came as a complete surprise to me stuck out in the bush as I was without
                            wireless or mail. George had been away for a fortnight so you can imagine how
                            surprised I was when a messenger arrived on a bicycle with a note from George. The
                            note informed me that war had been declared and that George, as a Reserve Officer in
                            the KAR had been called up. I was to start packing immediately and be ready by noon
                            next day when George would arrive with a lorry for our goods and chattels. I started to
                            pack immediately with the help of the houseboy and by the time George arrived with
                            the lorry only the frig remained to be packed and this was soon done.

                            Throughout the morning Game Scouts had been arriving from outlying parts of
                            the District. I don’t think they had the least idea where they were supposed to go or
                            whom they were to fight but were ready to fight anybody, anywhere, with George.
                            They all looked very smart in well pressed uniforms hung about with water bottles and
                            ammunition pouches. The large buffalo badge on their round pill box hats absolutely
                            glittered with polish. All of course carried rifles and when George arrived they all lined up
                            and they looked most impressive. I took some snaps but unfortunately it was drizzling
                            and they may not come out well.

                            We left Nzassa without a backward glance. We were pretty fed up with it by
                            then. The children and I are spending a few days here with George but our luggage, the
                            dogs, and the houseboys have already left by train for Morogoro where a small house
                            has been found for the children and me.

                            George tells me that all the German males in this Territory were interned without a
                            hitch. The whole affair must have been very well organised. In every town and
                            settlement special constables were sworn in to do the job. It must have been a rather
                            unpleasant one but seems to have gone without incident. There is a big transit camp
                            here at Dar for the German men. Later they are to be sent out of the country, possibly to
                            Rhodesia.

                            The Indian tailors in the town are all terribly busy making Army uniforms, shorts
                            and tunics in khaki drill. George swears that they have muddled their orders and he has
                            been given the wrong things. Certainly the tunic is far too tight. His hat, a khaki slouch hat
                            like you saw the Australians wearing in the last war, is also too small though it is the
                            largest they have in stock. We had a laugh over his other equipment which includes a
                            small canvas haversack and a whistle on a black cord. George says he feels like he is
                            back in his Boy Scouting boyhood.

                            George has just come in to say the we will be leaving for Morogoro tomorrow
                            afternoon.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 14th September 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            Morogoro is a complete change from Nzassa. This is a large and sprawling
                            township. The native town and all the shops are down on the flat land by the railway but
                            all the European houses are away up the slope of the high Uluguru Mountains.
                            Morogoro was a flourishing town in the German days and all the streets are lined with
                            trees for coolness as is the case in other German towns. These trees are the flamboyant
                            acacia which has an umbrella top and throws a wide but light shade.

                            Most of the houses have large gardens so they cover a considerable area and it
                            is quite a safari for me to visit friends on foot as our house is on the edge of this area and
                            the furthest away from the town. Here ones house is in accordance with ones seniority in
                            Government service. Ours is a simple affair, just three lofty square rooms opening on to
                            a wide enclosed verandah. Mosquitoes are bad here so all doors and windows are
                            screened and we will have to carry on with our daily doses of quinine.

                            George came up to Morogoro with us on the train. This was fortunate because I
                            went down with a sharp attack of malaria at the hotel on the afternoon of our departure
                            from Dar es Salaam. George’s drastic cure of vast doses of quinine, a pillow over my
                            head, and the bed heaped with blankets soon brought down the temperature so I was
                            fit enough to board the train but felt pretty poorly on the trip. However next day I felt
                            much better which was a good thing as George had to return to Dar es Salaam after two
                            days. His train left late at night so I did not see him off but said good-bye at home
                            feeling dreadful but trying to keep the traditional stiff upper lip of the wife seeing her
                            husband off to the wars. He hopes to go off to Abyssinia but wrote from Dar es Salaam
                            to say that he is being sent down to Rhodesia by road via Mbeya to escort the first
                            detachment of Rhodesian white troops.

                            First he will have to select suitable camping sites for night stops and arrange for
                            supplies of food. I am very pleased as it means he will be safe for a while anyway. We
                            are both worried about Ann and George in England and wonder if it would be safer to
                            have them sent out.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 4th November 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            My big news is that George has been released from the Army. He is very
                            indignant and disappointed because he hoped to go to Abyssinia but I am terribly,
                            terribly glad. The Chief Secretary wrote a very nice letter to George pointing out that he
                            would be doing a greater service to his country by his work of elephant control, giving
                            crop protection during the war years when foodstuffs are such a vital necessity, than by
                            doing a soldiers job. The Government plan to start a huge rice scheme in the Rufiji area,
                            and want George to control the elephant and hippo there. First of all though. he must go
                            to the Southern Highlands Province where there is another outbreak of Rinderpest, to
                            shoot out diseased game especially buffalo, which might spread the disease.

                            So off we go again on our travels but this time we are leaving the two dogs
                            behind in the care of Daniel, the Game Clerk. Fanny is very pregnant and I hate leaving
                            her behind but the clerk has promised to look after her well. We are taking Hamisi, our
                            dignified Swahili cook and the houseboy Juma and his wife whom we brought with us
                            from Nzassa. The boy is not very good but his wife makes a cheerful and placid ayah
                            and adores Johnny.

                            Eleanor.

                            Iringa 8th December 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            The children and I are staying in a small German house leased from the
                            Custodian of Enemy Property. I can’t help feeling sorry for the owners who must be in
                            concentration camps somewhere.George is away in the bush dealing with the
                            Rinderpest emergency and the cook has gone with him. Now I have sent the houseboy
                            and the ayah away too. Two days ago my houseboy came and told me that he felt
                            very ill and asked me to write a ‘chit’ to the Indian Doctor. In the note I asked the Doctor
                            to let me know the nature of his complaint and to my horror I got a note from him to say
                            that the houseboy had a bad case of Venereal Disease. Was I horrified! I took it for
                            granted that his wife must be infected too and told them both that they would have to
                            return to their home in Nzassa. The boy shouted and the ayah wept but I paid them in
                            lieu of notice and gave them money for the journey home. So there I was left servant
                            less with firewood to chop, a smokey wood burning stove to control, and of course, the
                            two children.

                            To add to my troubles Johnny had a temperature so I sent for the European
                            Doctor. He diagnosed malaria and was astonished at the size of Johnny’s spleen. He
                            said that he must have had suppressed malaria over a long period and the poor child
                            must now be fed maximum doses of quinine for a long time. The Doctor is a fatherly
                            soul, he has been recalled from retirement to do this job as so many of the young
                            doctors have been called up for service with the army.

                            I told him about my houseboy’s complaint and the way I had sent him off
                            immediately, and he was very amused at my haste, saying that it is most unlikely that
                            they would have passed the disease onto their employers. Anyway I hated the idea. I
                            mean to engage a houseboy locally, but will do without an ayah until we return to
                            Morogoro in February.

                            Something happened today to cheer me up. A telegram came from Daniel which
                            read, “FLANNEL HAS FIVE CUBS.”

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 10th March 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            We are having very heavy rain and the countryside is a most beautiful green. In
                            spite of the weather George is away on safari though it must be very wet and
                            unpleasant. He does work so hard at his elephant hunting job and has got very thin. I
                            suppose this is partly due to those stomach pains he gets and the doctors don’t seem
                            to diagnose the trouble.

                            Living in Morogoro is much like living in a country town in South Africa, particularly
                            as there are several South African women here. I go out quite often to morning teas. We
                            all take our war effort knitting, and natter, and are completely suburban.
                            I sometimes go and see an elderly couple who have been interred here. They
                            are cold shouldered by almost everyone else but I cannot help feeling sorry for them.
                            Usually I go by invitation because I know Mrs Ruppel prefers to be prepared and
                            always has sandwiches and cake. They both speak English but not fluently and
                            conversation is confined to talking about my children and theirs. Their two sons were
                            students in Germany when war broke out but are now of course in the German Army.
                            Such nice looking chaps from their photographs but I suppose thorough Nazis. As our
                            conversation is limited I usually ask to hear a gramophone record or two. They have a
                            large collection.

                            Janet, the ayah whom I engaged at Mbeya, is proving a great treasure. She is a
                            trained hospital ayah and is most dependable and capable. She is, perhaps, a little strict
                            but the great thing is that I can trust her with the children out of my sight.
                            Last week I went out at night for the first time without George. The occasion was
                            a farewell sundowner given by the Commissioner of Prisoners and his wife. I was driven
                            home by the District Officer and he stopped his car by the back door in a large puddle.
                            Ayah came to the back door, storm lamp in hand, to greet me. My escort prepared to
                            drive off but the car stuck. I thought a push from me might help, so without informing the
                            driver, I pushed as hard as I could on the back of the car. Unfortunately the driver
                            decided on other tactics. He put the engine in reverse and I was knocked flat on my back
                            in the puddle. The car drove forward and away without the driver having the least idea of
                            what happened. The ayah was in quite a state, lifting me up and scolding me for my
                            stupidity as though I were Kate. I was a bit shaken but non the worse and will know
                            better next time.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 14th July 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            How good it was of Dad to send that cable to Mother offering to have Ann and
                            George to live with you if they are accepted for inclusion in the list of children to be
                            evacuated to South Africa. It would be wonderful to know that they are safely out of the
                            war zone and so much nearer to us but I do dread the thought of the long sea voyage
                            particularly since we heard the news of the sinking of that liner carrying child evacuees to
                            Canada. I worry about them so much particularly as George is so often away on safari.
                            He is so comforting and calm and I feel brave and confident when he is home.
                            We have had no news from England for five weeks but, when she last wrote,
                            mother said the children were very well and that she was sure they would be safe in the
                            country with her.

                            Kate and John are growing fast. Kate is such a pretty little girl, rosy in spite of the
                            rather trying climate. I have allowed her hair to grow again and it hangs on her shoulders
                            in shiny waves. John is a more slightly built little boy than young George was, and quite
                            different in looks. He has Dad’s high forehead and cleft chin, widely spaced brown eyes
                            that are not so dark as mine and hair that is still fair and curly though ayah likes to smooth it
                            down with water every time she dresses him. He is a shy child, and although he plays
                            happily with Kate, he does not care to play with other children who go in the late
                            afternoons to a lawn by the old German ‘boma’.

                            Kate has playmates of her own age but still rather clings to me. Whilst she loves
                            to have friends here to play with her, she will not go to play at their houses unless I go
                            too and stay. She always insists on accompanying me when I go out to morning tea
                            and always calls JanetJohn’s ayah”. One morning I went to a knitting session at a
                            neighbours house. We are all knitting madly for the troops. As there were several other
                            women in the lounge and no other children, I installed Kate in the dining room with a
                            colouring book and crayons. My hostess’ black dog was chained to the dining room
                            table leg, but as he and Kate are on friendly terms I was not bothered by this.
                            Some time afterwards, during a lull in conversation, I heard a strange drumming
                            noise coming from the dining room. I went quickly to investigate and, to my horror, found
                            Kate lying on her back with the dog chain looped around her neck. The frightened dog
                            was straining away from her as far as he could get and the chain was pulled so tightly
                            around her throat that she could not scream. The drumming noise came from her heels
                            kicking in a panic on the carpet.

                            Even now I do not know how Kate got herself into this predicament. Luckily no
                            great harm was done but I think I shall do my knitting at home in future.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 16th November 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            I much prefer our little house on the hillside to the larger one we had down below.
                            The only disadvantage is that the garden is on three levels and both children have had
                            some tumbles down the steps on the tricycle. John is an extremely stoical child. He
                            never cries when he hurts himself.

                            I think I have mentioned ‘Morningside’ before. It is a kind of Resthouse high up in
                            the Uluguru Mountains above Morogoro. Jess Howe-Browne, who runs the large
                            house as a Guest House, is a wonderful woman. Besides running the boarding house
                            she also grows vegetables, flowers and fruit for sale in Morogoro and Dar es Salaam.
                            Her guests are usually women and children from Dar es Salaam who come in the hot
                            season to escape the humidity on the coast. Often the mothers leave their children for
                            long periods in Jess Howe-Browne’s care. There is a road of sorts up the mountain side
                            to Morningside, but this is so bad that cars do not attempt it and guests are carried up
                            the mountain in wicker chairs lashed to poles. Four men carry an adult, and two a child,
                            and there are of course always spare bearers and they work in shifts.

                            Last week the children and I went to Morningside for the day as guests. John
                            rode on my lap in one chair and Kate in a small chair on her own. This did not please
                            Kate at all. The poles are carried on the bearers shoulders and one is perched quite high.
                            The motion is a peculiar rocking one. The bearers chant as they go and do not seem
                            worried by shortness of breath! They are all hillmen of course and are, I suppose, used
                            to trotting up and down to the town.

                            Morningside is well worth visiting and we spent a delightful day there. The fresh
                            cool air is a great change from the heavy air of the valley. A river rushes down the
                            mountain in a series of cascades, and the gardens are shady and beautiful. Behind the
                            property is a thick indigenous forest which stretches from Morningside to the top of the
                            mountain. The house is an old German one, rather in need of repair, but Jess has made
                            it comfortable and attractive, with some of her old family treasures including a fine old
                            Grandfather clock. We had a wonderful lunch which included large fresh strawberries and
                            cream. We made the return journey again in the basket chairs and got home before dark.
                            George returned home at the weekend with a baby elephant whom we have
                            called Winnie. She was rescued from a mud hole by some African villagers and, as her
                            mother had abandoned her, they took her home and George was informed. He went in
                            the truck to fetch her having first made arrangements to have her housed in a shed on the
                            Agriculture Department Experimental Farm here. He has written to the Game Dept
                            Headquarters to inform the Game Warden and I do not know what her future will be, but
                            in the meantime she is our pet. George is afraid she will not survive because she has
                            had a very trying time. She stands about waist high and is a delightful creature and quite
                            docile. Asian and African children as well as Europeans gather to watch her and George
                            encourages them to bring fruit for her – especially pawpaws which she loves.
                            Whilst we were there yesterday one of the local ladies came, very smartly
                            dressed in a linen frock, silk stockings, and high heeled shoes. She watched fascinated
                            whilst Winnie neatly split a pawpaw and removed the seeds with her trunk, before
                            scooping out the pulp and putting it in her mouth. It was a particularly nice ripe pawpaw
                            and Winnie enjoyed it so much that she stretched out her trunk for more. The lady took
                            fright and started to run with Winnie after her, sticky trunk outstretched. Quite an
                            entertaining sight. George managed to stop Winnie but not before she had left a gooey
                            smear down the back of the immaculate frock.

                            Eleanor.

                             

                            #6265
                            TracyTracy
                            Participant

                              From Tanganyika with Love

                              continued  ~ part 6

                              With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                              Mchewe 6th June 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              Home again! We had an uneventful journey. Kate was as good as gold all the
                              way. We stopped for an hour at Bulawayo where we had to change trains but
                              everything was simplified for me by a very pleasant man whose wife shared my
                              compartment. Not only did he see me through customs but he installed us in our new
                              train and his wife turned up to see us off with magazines for me and fruit and sweets for
                              Kate. Very, very kind, don’t you think?

                              Kate and I shared the compartment with a very pretty and gentle girl called
                              Clarice Simpson. She was very worried and upset because she was going home to
                              Broken Hill in response to a telegram informing her that her young husband was
                              dangerously ill from Blackwater Fever. She was very helpful with Kate whose
                              cheerfulness helped Clarice, I think, though I, quite unintentionally was the biggest help
                              at the end of our journey. Remember the partial dentures I had had made just before
                              leaving Cape Town? I know I shall never get used to the ghastly things, I’ve had them
                              two weeks now and they still wobble. Well this day I took them out and wrapped them
                              in a handkerchief, but when we were packing up to leave the train I could find the
                              handkerchief but no teeth! We searched high and low until the train had slowed down to
                              enter Broken Hill station. Then Clarice, lying flat on the floor, spied the teeth in the dark
                              corner under the bottom bunk. With much stretching she managed to retrieve the
                              dentures covered in grime and fluff. My look of horror, when I saw them, made young
                              Clarice laugh. She was met at the station by a very grave elderly couple. I do wonder
                              how things turned out for her.

                              I stayed overnight with Kate at the Great Northern Hotel, and we set off for
                              Mbeya by plane early in the morning. One of our fellow passengers was a young
                              mother with a three week old baby. How ideas have changed since Ann was born. This
                              time we had a smooth passage and I was the only passenger to get airsick. Although
                              there were other women passengers it was a man once again, who came up and
                              offered to help. Kate went off with him amiably and he entertained her until we touched
                              down at Mbeya.

                              George was there to meet us with a wonderful surprise, a little red two seater
                              Ford car. She is a bit battered and looks a bit odd because the boot has been
                              converted into a large wooden box for carrying raw salt, but she goes like the wind.
                              Where did George raise the cash to buy a car? Whilst we were away he found a small
                              cave full of bat guano near a large cave which is worked by a man called Bob Sargent.
                              As Sargent did not want any competition he bought the contents of the cave from
                              George giving him the small car as part payment.

                              It was lovely to return to our little home and find everything fresh and tidy and the
                              garden full of colour. But it was heartbreaking to go into the bedroom and see George’s
                              precious forgotten boots still standing by his empty bed.

                              With much love,
                              Eleanor.

                              Mchewe 25th June 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              Last Friday George took Kate and me in the little red Ford to visit Mr Sargent’s
                              camp on the Songwe River which cuts the Mbeya-Mbosi road. Mr Sargent bought
                              Hicky-Wood’s guano deposit and also our small cave and is making a good living out of
                              selling the bat guano to the coffee farmers in this province. George went to try to interest
                              him in a guano deposit near Kilwa in the Southern Province. Mr Sargent agreed to pay
                              25 pounds to cover the cost of the car trip and pegging costs. George will make the trip
                              to peg the claim and take samples for analysis. If the quality is sufficiently high, George
                              and Mr Sargent will go into partnership. George will work the claim and ship out the
                              guano from Kilwa which is on the coast of the Southern Province of Tanganyika. So now
                              we are busy building castles in the air once more.

                              On Saturday we went to Mbeya where George had to attend a meeting of the
                              Trout Association. In the afternoon he played in a cricket match so Kate and I spent the
                              whole day with the wife of the new Superintendent of Police. They have a very nice
                              new house with lawns and a sunken rose garden. Kate had a lovely romp with Kit, her
                              three year old son.

                              Mrs Wolten also has two daughters by a previous marriage. The elder girl said to
                              me, “Oh Mrs Rushby your husband is exactly like the strong silent type of man I
                              expected to see in Africa but he is the only one I have seen. I think he looks exactly like
                              those men in the ‘Barney’s Tobacco’ advertisements.”

                              I went home with a huge pile of magazines to keep me entertained whilst
                              George is away on the Kilwa trip.

                              Lots of love,
                              Eleanor.

                              Mchewe 9th July 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              George returned on Monday from his Kilwa safari. He had an entertaining
                              tale to tell.

                              Before he approached Mr Sargent about going shares in the Kilwa guano
                              deposit he first approached a man on the Lupa who had done very well out of a small
                              gold reef. This man, however said he was not interested so you can imagine how
                              indignant George was when he started on his long trip, to find himself being trailed by
                              this very man and a co-driver in a powerful Ford V8 truck. George stopped his car and
                              had some heated things to say – awful threats I imagine as to what would happen to
                              anyone who staked his claim. Then he climbed back into our ancient little two seater and
                              went off like a bullet driving all day and most of the night. As the others took turns in
                              driving you can imagine what a feat it was for George to arrive in Kilwa ahead of them.
                              When they drove into Kilwa he met them with a bright smile and a bit of bluff –
                              quite justifiable under the circumstances I think. He said, you chaps can have a rest now,
                              you’re too late.” He then whipped off and pegged the claim. he brought some samples
                              of guano back but until it has been analysed he will not know whether the guano will be
                              an economic proposition or not. George is not very hopeful. He says there is a good
                              deal of sand mixed with the guano and that much of it was damp.

                              The trip was pretty eventful for Kianda, our houseboy. The little two seater car
                              had been used by its previous owner for carting bags of course salt from his salt pans.
                              For this purpose the dicky seat behind the cab had been removed, and a kind of box
                              built into the boot of the car. George’s camp kit and provisions were packed into this
                              open box and Kianda perched on top to keep an eye on the belongings. George
                              travelled so fast on the rough road that at some point during the night Kianda was
                              bumped off in the middle of the Game Reserve. George did not notice that he was
                              missing until the next morning. He concluded, quite rightly as it happened, that Kianda
                              would be picked up by the rival truck so he continued his journey and Kianda rejoined
                              him at Kilwa.

                              Believe it or not, the same thing happened on the way back but fortunately this
                              time George noticed his absence. He stopped the car and had just started back on his
                              tracks when Kianda came running down the road still clutching the unlighted storm lamp
                              which he was holding in his hand when he fell. The glass was not even cracked.
                              We are finding it difficult just now to buy native chickens and eggs. There has
                              been an epidemic amongst the poultry and one hesitates to eat the survivors. I have a
                              brine tub in which I preserve our surplus meat but I need the chickens for soup.
                              I hope George will be home for some months. He has arranged to take a Mr
                              Blackburn, a wealthy fruit farmer from Elgin, Cape, on a hunting safari during September
                              and October and that should bring in some much needed cash. Lillian Eustace has
                              invited Kate and me to spend the whole of October with her in Tukuyu.
                              I am so glad that you so much enjoy having Ann and George with you. We miss
                              them dreadfully. Kate is a pretty little girl and such a little madam. You should hear the
                              imperious way in which she calls the kitchenboy for her meals. “Boy Brekkis, Boy Lunch,
                              and Boy Eggy!” are her three calls for the day. She knows no Ki-Swahili.

                              Eleanor

                              Mchewe 8th October 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              I am rapidly becoming as superstitious as our African boys. They say the wild
                              animals always know when George is away from home and come down to have their
                              revenge on me because he has killed so many.

                              I am being besieged at night by a most beastly leopard with a half grown cub. I
                              have grown used to hearing leopards grunt as they hunt in the hills at night but never
                              before have I had one roaming around literally under the windows. It has been so hot at
                              night lately that I have been sleeping with my bedroom door open onto the verandah. I
                              felt quite safe because the natives hereabouts are law-abiding and in any case I always
                              have a boy armed with a club sleeping in the kitchen just ten yards away. As an added
                              precaution I also have a loaded .45 calibre revolver on my bedside table, and Fanny
                              our bullterrier, sleeps on the mat by my bed. I am also looking after Barney, a fine
                              Airedale dog belonging to the Costers. He slept on a mat by the open bedroom door
                              near a dimly burning storm lamp.

                              As usual I went to sleep with an easy mind on Monday night, but was awakened
                              in the early hours of Tuesday by the sound of a scuffle on the front verandah. The noise
                              was followed by a scream of pain from Barney. I jumped out of bed and, grabbing the
                              lamp with my left hand and the revolver in my right, I rushed outside just in time to see
                              two animal figures roll over the edge of the verandah into the garden below. There they
                              engaged in a terrific tug of war. Fortunately I was too concerned for Barney to be
                              nervous. I quickly fired two shots from the revolver, which incidentally makes a noise like
                              a cannon, and I must have startled the leopard for both animals, still locked together,
                              disappeared over the edge of the terrace. I fired two more shots and in a few moments
                              heard the leopard making a hurried exit through the dry leaves which lie thick under the
                              wild fig tree just beyond the terrace. A few seconds later Barney appeared on the low
                              terrace wall. I called his name but he made no move to come but stood with hanging
                              head. In desperation I rushed out, felt blood on my hands when I touched him, so I
                              picked him up bodily and carried him into the house. As I regained the verandah the boy
                              appeared, club in hand, having been roused by the shots. He quickly grasped what had
                              happened when he saw my blood saturated nightie. He fetched a bowl of water and a
                              clean towel whilst I examined Barney’s wounds. These were severe, the worst being a
                              gaping wound in his throat. I washed the gashes with a strong solution of pot permang
                              and I am glad to say they are healing remarkably well though they are bound to leave
                              scars. Fanny, very prudently, had taken no part in the fighting except for frenzied barking
                              which she kept up all night. The shots had of course wakened Kate but she seemed
                              more interested than alarmed and kept saying “Fanny bark bark, Mummy bang bang.
                              Poor Barney lots of blood.”

                              In the morning we inspected the tracks in the garden. There was a shallow furrow
                              on the terrace where Barney and the leopard had dragged each other to and fro and
                              claw marks on the trunk of the wild fig tree into which the leopard climbed after I fired the
                              shots. The affair was of course a drama after the Africans’ hearts and several of our
                              shamba boys called to see me next day to make sympathetic noises and discuss the
                              affair.

                              I went to bed early that night hoping that the leopard had been scared off for
                              good but I must confess I shut all windows and doors. Alas for my hopes of a restful
                              night. I had hardly turned down the lamp when the leopard started its terrifying grunting
                              just under the bedroom windows. If only she would sniff around quietly I should not
                              mind, but the noise is ghastly, something like the first sickening notes of a braying
                              donkey, amplified here by the hills and the gorge which is only a stones throw from the
                              bedroom. Barney was too sick to bark but Fanny barked loud enough for two and the more
                              frantic she became the hungrier the leopard sounded. Kate of course woke up and this
                              time she was frightened though I assured her that the noise was just a donkey having
                              fun. Neither of us slept until dawn when the leopard returned to the hills. When we
                              examined the tracks next morning we found that the leopard had been accompanied by
                              a fair sized cub and that together they had prowled around the house, kitchen, and out
                              houses, visiting especially the places to which the dogs had been during the day.
                              As I feel I cannot bear many more of these nights, I am sending a note to the
                              District Commissioner, Mbeya by the messenger who takes this letter to the post,
                              asking him to send a game scout or an armed policeman to deal with the leopard.
                              So don’t worry, for by the time this reaches you I feel sure this particular trouble
                              will be over.

                              Eleanor.

                              Mchewe 17th October 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              More about the leopard I fear! My messenger returned from Mbeya to say that
                              the District Officer was on safari so he had given the message to the Assistant District
                              Officer who also apparently left on safari later without bothering to reply to my note, so
                              there was nothing for me to do but to send for the village Nimrod and his muzzle loader
                              and offer him a reward if he could frighten away or kill the leopard.

                              The hunter, Laza, suggested that he should sleep at the house so I went to bed
                              early leaving Laza and his two pals to make themselves comfortable on the living room
                              floor by the fire. Laza was armed with a formidable looking muzzle loader, crammed I
                              imagine with nuts and bolts and old rusty nails. One of his pals had a spear and the other
                              a panga. This fellow was also in charge of the Petromax pressure lamp whose light was
                              hidden under a packing case. I left the campaign entirely to Laza’s direction.
                              As usual the leopard came at midnight stealing down from the direction of the
                              kitchen and announcing its presence and position with its usual ghastly grunts. Suddenly
                              pandemonium broke loose on the back verandah. I heard the roar of the muzzle loader
                              followed by a vigourous tattoo beaten on an empty paraffin tin and I rushed out hoping
                              to find the dead leopard. however nothing of the kind had happened except that the
                              noise must have scared the beast because she did not return again that night. Next
                              morning Laza solemnly informed me that, though he had shot many leopards in his day,
                              this was no ordinary leopard but a “sheitani” (devil) and that as his gun was no good
                              against witchcraft he thought he might as well retire from the hunt. Scared I bet, and I
                              don’t blame him either.

                              You can imagine my relief when a car rolled up that afternoon bringing Messers
                              Stewart and Griffiths, two farmers who live about 15 miles away, between here and
                              Mbeya. They had a note from the Assistant District Officer asking them to help me and
                              they had come to set up a trap gun in the garden. That night the leopard sniffed all
                              around the gun and I had the added strain of waiting for the bang and wondering what I
                              should do if the beast were only wounded. I conjured up horrible visions of the two little
                              totos trotting up the garden path with the early morning milk and being horribly mauled,
                              but I needn’t have worried because the leopard was far too wily to be caught that way.
                              Two more ghastly nights passed and then I had another visitor, a Dr Jackson of
                              the Tsetse Department on safari in the District. He listened sympathetically to my story
                              and left his shotgun and some SSG cartridges with me and instructed me to wait until the
                              leopard was pretty close and blow its b—– head off. It was good of him to leave his
                              gun. George always says there are three things a man should never lend, ‘His wife, his
                              gun and his dog.’ (I think in that order!)I felt quite cheered by Dr Jackson’s visit and sent
                              once again for Laza last night and arranged a real show down. In the afternoon I draped
                              heavy blankets over the living room windows to shut out the light of the pressure lamp
                              and the four of us, Laza and his two stooges and I waited up for the leopard. When we
                              guessed by her grunts that she was somewhere between the kitchen and the back door
                              we all rushed out, first the boy with the panga and the lamp, next Laza with his muzzle
                              loader, then me with the shotgun followed closely by the boy with the spear. What a
                              farce! The lamp was our undoing. We were blinded by the light and did not even
                              glimpse the leopard which made off with a derisive grunt. Laza said smugly that he knew
                              it was hopeless to try and now I feel tired and discouraged too.

                              This morning I sent a runner to Mbeya to order the hotel taxi for tomorrow and I
                              shall go to friends in Mbeya for a day or two and then on to Tukuyu where I shall stay
                              with the Eustaces until George returns from Safari.

                              Eleanor.

                              Mchewe 18th November 1937

                              My darling Ann,

                              Here we are back in our own home and how lovely it is to have Daddy back from
                              safari. Thank you very much for your letter. I hope by now you have got mine telling you
                              how very much I liked the beautiful tray cloth you made for my birthday. I bet there are
                              not many little girls of five who can embroider as well as you do, darling. The boy,
                              Matafari, washes and irons it so carefully and it looks lovely on the tea tray.

                              Daddy and I had some fun last night. I was in bed and Daddy was undressing
                              when we heard a funny scratching noise on the roof. I thought it was the leopard. Daddy
                              quickly loaded his shotgun and ran outside. He had only his shirt on and he looked so
                              funny. I grabbed the loaded revolver from the cupboard and ran after Dad in my nightie
                              but after all the rush it was only your cat, Winnie, though I don’t know how she managed
                              to make such a noise. We felt so silly, we laughed and laughed.

                              Kate talks a lot now but in such a funny way you would laugh to her her. She
                              hears the houseboys call me Memsahib so sometimes instead of calling me Mummy
                              she calls me “Oompaab”. She calls the bedroom a ‘bippon’ and her little behind she
                              calls her ‘sittendump’. She loves to watch Mandawi’s cattle go home along the path
                              behind the kitchen. Joseph your donkey, always leads the cows. He has a lazy life now.
                              I am glad you had such fun on Guy Fawkes Day. You will be sad to leave
                              Plumstead but I am sure you will like going to England on the big ship with granny Kate.
                              I expect you will start school when you get to England and I am sure you will find that
                              fun.

                              God bless my dear little girl. Lots of love from Daddy and Kate,
                              and Mummy

                              Mchewe 18th November 1937

                              Hello George Darling,

                              Thank you for your lovely drawing of Daddy shooting an elephant. Daddy says
                              that the only thing is that you have drawn him a bit too handsome.

                              I went onto the verandah a few minutes ago to pick a banana for Kate from the
                              bunch hanging there and a big hornet flew out and stung my elbow! There are lots of
                              them around now and those stinging flies too. Kate wears thick corduroy dungarees so
                              that she will not get her fat little legs bitten. She is two years old now and is a real little
                              pickle. She loves running out in the rain so I have ordered a pair of red Wellingtons and a
                              tiny umbrella from a Nairobi shop for her Christmas present.

                              Fanny’s puppies have their eyes open now and have very sharp little teeth.
                              They love to nip each other. We are keeping the fiercest little one whom we call Paddy
                              but are giving the others to friends. The coffee bushes are full of lovely white flowers
                              and the bees and ants are very busy stealing their honey.

                              Yesterday a troop of baboons came down the hill and Dad shot a big one to
                              scare the others off. They are a nuisance because they steal the maize and potatoes
                              from the native shambas and then there is not enough food for the totos.
                              Dad and I are very proud of you for not making a fuss when you went to the
                              dentist to have that tooth out.

                              Bye bye, my fine little son.
                              Three bags full of love from Kate, Dad and Mummy.

                              Mchewe 12th February, 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              here is some news that will please you. George has been offered and has
                              accepted a job as Forester at Mbulu in the Northern Province of Tanganyika. George
                              would have preferred a job as Game Ranger, but though the Game Warden, Philip
                              Teare, is most anxious to have him in the Game Department, there is no vacancy at
                              present. Anyway if one crops up later, George can always transfer from one
                              Government Department to another. Poor George, he hates the idea of taking a job. He
                              says that hitherto he has always been his own master and he detests the thought of
                              being pushed around by anyone.

                              Now however he has no choice. Our capitol is almost exhausted and the coffee
                              market shows no signs of improving. With three children and another on the way, he
                              feels he simply must have a fixed income. I shall be sad to leave this little farm. I love
                              our little home and we have been so very happy here, but my heart rejoices at the
                              thought of overseas leave every thirty months. Now we shall be able to fetch Ann and
                              George from England and in three years time we will all be together in Tanganyika once
                              more.

                              There is no sale for farms so we will just shut the house and keep on a very small
                              labour force just to keep the farm from going derelict. We are eating our hens but will
                              take our two dogs, Fanny and Paddy with us.

                              One thing I shall be glad to leave is that leopard. She still comes grunting around
                              at night but not as badly as she did before. I do not mind at all when George is here but
                              until George was accepted for this forestry job I was afraid he might go back to the
                              Diggings and I should once more be left alone to be cursed by the leopard’s attentions.
                              Knowing how much I dreaded this George was most anxious to shoot the leopard and
                              for weeks he kept his shotgun and a powerful torch handy at night.

                              One night last week we woke to hear it grunting near the kitchen. We got up very
                              quietly and whilst George loaded the shotgun with SSG, I took the torch and got the
                              heavy revolver from the cupboard. We crept out onto the dark verandah where George
                              whispered to me to not switch on the torch until he had located the leopard. It was pitch
                              black outside so all he could do was listen intently. And then of course I spoilt all his
                              plans. I trod on the dog’s tin bowl and made a terrific clatter! George ordered me to
                              switch on the light but it was too late and the leopard vanished into the long grass of the
                              Kalonga, grunting derisively, or so it sounded.

                              She never comes into the clearing now but grunts from the hillside just above it.

                              Eleanor.

                              Mbulu 18th March, 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Journeys end at last. here we are at Mbulu, installed in our new quarters which are
                              as different as they possibly could be from our own cosy little home at Mchewe. We
                              live now, my dears, in one wing of a sort of ‘Beau Geste’ fort but I’ll tell you more about
                              it in my next letter. We only arrived yesterday and have not had time to look around.
                              This letter will tell you just about our trip from Mbeya.

                              We left the farm in our little red Ford two seater with all our portable goods and
                              chattels plus two native servants and the two dogs. Before driving off, George took one
                              look at the flattened springs and declared that he would be surprised if we reached
                              Mbeya without a breakdown and that we would never make Mbulu with the car so
                              overloaded.

                              However luck was with us. We reached Mbeya without mishap and at one of the
                              local garages saw a sturdy used Ford V8 boxbody car for sale. The garage agreed to
                              take our small car as part payment and George drew on our little remaining capitol for the
                              rest. We spent that night in the house of the Forest Officer and next morning set out in
                              comfort for the Northern Province of Tanganyika.

                              I had done the journey from Dodoma to Mbeya seven years before so was
                              familiar with the scenery but the road was much improved and the old pole bridges had
                              been replaced by modern steel ones. Kate was as good as gold all the way. We
                              avoided hotels and camped by the road and she found this great fun.
                              The road beyond Dodoma was new to me and very interesting country, flat and
                              dry and dusty, as little rain falls there. The trees are mostly thorn trees but here and there
                              one sees a giant baobab, weird trees with fantastically thick trunks and fat squat branches
                              with meagre foliage. The inhabitants of this area I found interesting though. They are
                              called Wagogo and are a primitive people who ape the Masai in dress and customs
                              though they are much inferior to the Masai in physique. They are also great herders of
                              cattle which, rather surprisingly, appear to thrive in that dry area.

                              The scenery alters greatly as one nears Babati, which one approaches by a high
                              escarpment from which one has a wonderful view of the Rift Valley. Babati township
                              appears to be just a small group of Indian shops and shabby native houses, but I
                              believe there are some good farms in the area. Though the little township is squalid,
                              there is a beautiful lake and grand mountains to please the eye. We stopped only long
                              enough to fill up with petrol and buy some foodstuffs. Beyond Babati there is a tsetse
                              fly belt and George warned our two native servants to see that no tsetse flies settled on
                              the dogs.

                              We stopped for the night in a little rest house on the road about 80 miles from
                              Arusha where we were to spend a few days with the Forest Officer before going on to
                              Mbulu. I enjoyed this section of the road very much because it runs across wide plains
                              which are bounded on the West by the blue mountains of the Rift Valley wall. Here for
                              the first time I saw the Masai on their home ground guarding their vast herds of cattle. I
                              also saw their strange primitive hovels called Manyattas, with their thorn walled cattle
                              bomas and lots of plains game – giraffe, wildebeest, ostriches and antelope. Kate was
                              wildly excited and entranced with the game especially the giraffe which stood gazing
                              curiously and unafraid of us, often within a few yards of the road.

                              Finally we came across the greatest thrill of all, my first view of Mt Meru the extinct
                              volcano about 16,000 feet high which towers over Arusha township. The approach to
                              Arusha is through flourishing coffee plantations very different alas from our farm at Mchewe. George says that at Arusha coffee growing is still a paying proposition
                              because here the yield of berry per acre is much higher than in the Southern highlands
                              and here in the North the farmers have not such heavy transport costs as the railway runs
                              from Arusha to the port at Tanga.

                              We stayed overnight at a rather second rate hotel but the food was good and we
                              had hot baths and a good nights rest. Next day Tom Lewis the Forest Officer, fetched
                              us and we spent a few days camping in a tent in the Lewis’ garden having meals at their
                              home. Both Tom and Lillian Lewis were most friendly. Tom lewis explained to George
                              what his work in the Mbulu District was to be, and they took us camping in a Forest
                              Reserve where Lillian and her small son David and Kate and I had a lovely lazy time
                              amidst beautiful surroundings. Before we left for Mbulu, Lillian took me shopping to buy
                              material for curtains for our new home. She described the Forest House at Mbulu to me
                              and it sounded delightful but alas, when we reached Mbulu we discovered that the
                              Assistant District Officer had moved into the Forest House and we were directed to the
                              Fort or Boma. The night before we left Arusha for Mbulu it rained very heavily and the
                              road was very treacherous and slippery due to the surface being of ‘black cotton’ soil
                              which has the appearance and consistency of chocolate blancmange, after rain. To get to
                              Mbulu we had to drive back in the direction of Dodoma for some 70 miles and then turn
                              to the right and drive across plains to the Great Rift Valley Wall. The views from this
                              escarpment road which climbs this wall are magnificent. At one point one looks down
                              upon Lake Manyara with its brilliant white beaches of soda.

                              The drive was a most trying one for George. We had no chains for the wheels
                              and several times we stuck in the mud and our two houseboys had to put grass and
                              branches under the wheels to stop them from spinning. Quite early on in the afternoon
                              George gave up all hope of reaching Mbulu that day and planned to spend the night in
                              a little bush rest camp at Karatu. However at one point it looked as though we would not
                              even reach this resthouse for late afternoon found us properly bogged down in a mess
                              of mud at the bottom of a long and very steep hill. In spite of frantic efforts on the part of
                              George and the two boys, all now very wet and muddy, the heavy car remained stuck.
                              Suddenly five Masai men appeared through the bushes beside the road. They
                              were all tall and angular and rather terrifying looking to me. Each wore only a blanket
                              knotted over one shoulder and all were armed with spears. They lined up by the side of
                              the road and just looked – not hostile but simply aloof and supercilious. George greeted
                              them and said in Ki-Swahili, “Help to push and I will reward you.” But they said nothing,
                              just drawing back imperceptibly to register disgust at the mere idea of manual labour.
                              Their expressions said quite clearly “A Masai is a warrior and does not soil his hands.”
                              George then did something which startled them I think, as much as me. He
                              plucked their spears from their hands one by one and flung them into the back of the
                              boxbody. “Now push!” he said, “And when we are safely out of the mud you shall have
                              your spears back.” To my utter astonishment the Masai seemed to applaud George’s
                              action. I think they admire courage in a man more than anything else. They pushed with a
                              will and soon we were roaring up the long steep slope. “I can’t stop here” quoth George
                              as up and up we went. The Masai were in mad pursuit with their blankets streaming
                              behind. They took a very steep path which was a shortcut to the top. They are certainly
                              amazing athletes and reached the top at the same time as the car. Their route of course
                              was shorter but much more steep, yet they came up without any sign of fatigue to claim
                              their spears and the money which George handed out with a friendly grin. The Masai
                              took the whole episode in good heart and we parted on the most friendly terms.

                              After a rather chilly night in the three walled shack, we started on the last lap of our
                              journey yesterday morning in bright weather and made the trip to Mbulu without incident.

                              Eleanor.

                              Mbulu 24th March, 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Mbulu is an attractive station but living in this rather romantic looking fort has many
                              disadvantages. Our quarters make up one side of the fort which is built up around a
                              hollow square. The buildings are single storied but very tall in the German manner and
                              there is a tower on one corner from which the Union Jack flies. The tower room is our
                              sitting room, and one has very fine views from the windows of the rolling country side.
                              However to reach this room one has to climb a steep flight of cement steps from the
                              court yard. Another disadvantage of this tower room is that there is a swarm of bees in
                              the roof and the stray ones drift down through holes in the ceiling and buzz angrily
                              against the window panes or fly around in a most menacing manner.

                              Ours are the only private quarters in the Fort. Two other sides of the Fort are
                              used as offices, storerooms and court room and the fourth side is simply a thick wall with
                              battlements and loopholes and a huge iron shod double door of enormous thickness
                              which is always barred at sunset when the flag is hauled down. Two Police Askari always
                              remain in the Fort on guard at night. The effect from outside the whitewashed fort is very
                              romantic but inside it is hardly homely and how I miss my garden at Mchewe and the
                              grass and trees.

                              We have no privacy downstairs because our windows overlook the bare
                              courtyard which is filled with Africans patiently waiting to be admitted to the courtroom as
                              witnesses or spectators. The outside windows which overlook the valley are heavily
                              barred. I can only think that the Germans who built this fort must have been very scared
                              of the local natives.

                              Our rooms are hardly cosy and are furnished with typical heavy German pieces.
                              We have a vast bleak bedroom, a dining room and an enormous gloomy kitchen in
                              which meals for the German garrison were cooked. At night this kitchen is alive with
                              gigantic rats but fortunately they do not seem to care for the other rooms. To crown
                              everything owls hoot and screech at night on the roof.

                              On our first day here I wandered outside the fort walls with Kate and came upon a
                              neatly fenced plot enclosing the graves of about fifteen South African soldiers killed by
                              the Germans in the 1914-18 war. I understand that at least one of theses soldiers died in
                              the courtyard here. The story goes, that during the period in the Great War when this fort
                              was occupied by a troop of South African Horse, a German named Siedtendorf
                              appeared at the great barred door at night and asked to speak to the officer in command
                              of the Troop. The officer complied with this request and the small shutter in the door was
                              opened so that he could speak with the German. The German, however, had not come
                              to speak. When he saw the exposed face of the officer, he fired, killing him, and
                              escaped into the dark night. I had this tale on good authority but cannot vouch for it. I do
                              know though, that there are two bullet holes in the door beside the shutter. An unhappy
                              story to think about when George is away, as he is now, and the moonlight throws queer
                              shadows in the court yard and the owls hoot.

                              However though I find our quarters depressing, I like Mbulu itself very much. It is
                              rolling country, treeless except for the plantations of the Forestry Dept. The land is very
                              fertile in the watered valleys but the grass on hills and plains is cropped to the roots by
                              the far too numerous cattle and goats. There are very few Europeans on the station, only
                              Mr Duncan, the District Officer, whose wife and children recently left for England, the
                              Assistant District Officer and his wife, a bachelor Veterinary Officer, a Road Foreman and
                              ourselves, and down in the village a German with an American wife and an elderly
                              Irishman whom I have not met. The Government officials have a communal vegetable
                              garden in the valley below the fort which keeps us well supplied with green stuff. 

                              Most afternoons George, Kate and I go for walks after tea. On Fridays there is a
                              little ceremony here outside the fort. In the late afternoon a little procession of small
                              native schoolboys, headed by a drum and penny whistle band come marching up the
                              road to a tune which sounds like ‘Two lovely black eyes”. They form up below our tower
                              and as the flag is lowered for the day they play ‘God save the King’, and then march off
                              again. It is quite a cheerful little ceremony.

                              The local Africans are a skinny lot and, I should say, a poor tribe. They protect
                              themselves against the cold by wrapping themselves in cotton blankets or a strip of
                              unbleached sheeting. This they drape over their heads, almost covering their faces and
                              the rest is wrapped closely round their bodies in the manner of a shroud. A most
                              depressing fashion. They live in very primitive comfortless houses. They simply make a
                              hollow in the hillside and build a front wall of wattle and daub. Into this rude shelter at night
                              go cattle and goats, men, women, and children.

                              Mbulu village has the usual mud brick and wattle dukas and wattle and daub
                              houses. The chief trader is a Goan who keeps a surprisingly good variety of tinned
                              foodstuffs and also sells hardware and soft goods.

                              The Europeans here have been friendly but as you will have noted there are
                              only two other women on station and no children at all to be companions for Kate.

                              Eleanor.

                              Mbulu 20th June 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Here we are on Safari with George at Babati where we are occupying a rest
                              house on the slopes of Ufiome Mountain. The slopes are a Forest Reserve and
                              George is supervising the clearing of firebreaks in preparation for the dry weather. He
                              goes off after a very early breakfast and returns home in the late afternoon so Kate and I
                              have long lazy days.

                              Babati is a pleasant spot and the resthouse is quite comfortable. It is about a mile
                              from the village which is just the usual collection of small mud brick and corrugated iron
                              Indian Dukas. There are a few settlers in the area growing coffee, or going in for mixed
                              farming but I don’t think they are doing very well. The farm adjoining the rest house is
                              owned by Lord Lovelace but is run by a manager.

                              George says he gets enough exercise clambering about all day on the mountain,
                              so Kate and I do our walking in the mornings when George is busy, and we all relax in
                              the evenings when George returns from his field work. Kate’s favourite walk is to the big
                              block of mtama (sorghum) shambas lower down the hill. There are huge swarms of tiny
                              grain eating birds around waiting the chance to plunder the mtama, so the crops are
                              watched from sunrise to sunset.

                              Crude observation platforms have been erected for this purpose in the centre of
                              each field and the women and the young boys of the family concerned, take it in turn to
                              occupy the platform and scare the birds. Each watcher has a sling and uses clods of
                              earth for ammunition. The clod is placed in the centre of the sling which is then whirled
                              around at arms length. Suddenly one end of the sling is released and the clod of earth
                              flies out and shatters against the mtama stalks. The sling makes a loud whip like crack and
                              the noise is quite startling and very effective in keeping the birds at a safe distance.

                              Eleanor.

                              Karatu 3rd July 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Still on safari you see! We left Babati ten days ago and passed through Mbulu
                              on our way to this spot. We slept out of doors one night beside Lake Tiawa about eight
                              miles from Mbulu. It was a peaceful spot and we enjoyed watching the reflection of the
                              sunset on the lake and the waterhens and duck and pelicans settling down for the night.
                              However it turned piercingly cold after sunset so we had an early supper and then all
                              three of us lay down to sleep in the back of the boxbody (station wagon). It was a tight
                              fit and a real case of ‘When Dad turns, we all turn.’

                              Here at Karatu we are living in a grass hut with only three walls. It is rather sweet
                              and looks like the setting for a Nativity Play. Kate and I share the only camp bed and
                              George and the dogs sleep on the floor. The air here is very fresh and exhilarating and
                              we all feel very fit. George is occupied all day supervising the cutting of firebreaks
                              around existing plantations and the forest reserve of indigenous trees. Our camp is on
                              the hillside and below us lie the fertile wheat lands of European farmers.

                              They are mostly Afrikaners, the descendants of the Boer families who were
                              invited by the Germans to settle here after the Boer War. Most of them are pro-British
                              now and a few have called in here to chat to George about big game hunting. George
                              gets on extremely well with them and recently attended a wedding where he had a
                              lively time dancing at the reception. He likes the older people best as most are great
                              individualists. One fine old man, surnamed von Rooyen, visited our camp. He is a Boer
                              of the General Smuts type with spare figure and bearded face. George tells me he is a
                              real patriarch with an enormous family – mainly sons. This old farmer fought against the
                              British throughout the Boer War under General Smuts and again against the British in the
                              German East Africa campaign when he was a scout and right hand man to Von Lettow. It
                              is said that Von Lettow was able to stay in the field until the end of the Great War
                              because he listened to the advise given to him by von Rooyen. However his dislike for
                              the British does not extend to George as they have a mutual interest in big game
                              hunting.

                              Kate loves being on safari. She is now so accustomed to having me as her nurse
                              and constant companion that I do not know how she will react to paid help. I shall have to
                              get someone to look after her during my confinement in the little German Red Cross
                              hospital at Oldeani.

                              George has obtained permission from the District Commissioner, for Kate and
                              me to occupy the Government Rest House at Oldeani from the end of July until the end
                              of August when my baby is due. He will have to carry on with his field work but will join
                              us at weekends whenever possible.

                              Eleanor.

                              Karatu 12th July 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Not long now before we leave this camp. We have greatly enjoyed our stay
                              here in spite of the very chilly earl mornings and the nights when we sit around in heavy
                              overcoats until our early bed time.

                              Last Sunday I persuaded George to take Kate and me to the famous Ngoro-
                              Ngoro Crater. He was not very keen to do so because the road is very bumpy for
                              anyone in my interesting condition but I feel so fit that I was most anxious to take this
                              opportunity of seeing the enormous crater. We may never be in this vicinity again and in
                              any case safari will not be so simple with a small baby.

                              What a wonderful trip it was! The road winds up a steep escarpment from which
                              one gets a glorious birds eye view of the plains of the Great Rift Valley far, far below.
                              The crater is immense. There is a road which skirts the rim in places and one has quite
                              startling views of the floor of the crater about two thousand feet below.

                              A camp for tourists has just been built in a clearing in the virgin forest. It is most
                              picturesque as the camp buildings are very neatly constructed log cabins with very high
                              pitched thatched roofs. We spent about an hour sitting on the grass near the edge of the
                              crater enjoying the sunshine and the sharp air and really awe inspiring view. Far below us
                              in the middle of the crater was a small lake and we could see large herds of game
                              animals grazing there but they were too far away to be impressive, even seen through
                              George’s field glasses. Most appeared to be wildebeest and zebra but I also picked
                              out buffalo. Much more exciting was my first close view of a wild elephant. George
                              pointed him out to me as we approached the rest camp on the inward journey. He
                              stood quietly under a tree near the road and did not seem to be disturbed by the car
                              though he rolled a wary eye in our direction. On our return journey we saw him again at
                              almost uncomfortably close quarters. We rounded a sharp corner and there stood the
                              elephant, facing us and slap in the middle of the road. He was busily engaged giving
                              himself a dust bath but spared time to give us an irritable look. Fortunately we were on a
                              slight slope so George quickly switched off the engine and backed the car quietly round
                              the corner. He got out of the car and loaded his rifle, just in case! But after he had finished
                              his toilet the elephant moved off the road and we took our chance and passed without
                              incident.

                              One notices the steepness of the Ngoro-Ngoro road more on the downward
                              journey than on the way up. The road is cut into the side of the mountain so that one has
                              a steep slope on one hand and a sheer drop on the other. George told me that a lorry
                              coming down the mountain was once charged from behind by a rhino. On feeling and
                              hearing the bash from behind the panic stricken driver drove off down the mountain as
                              fast as he dared and never paused until he reached level ground at the bottom of the
                              mountain. There was no sign of the rhino so the driver got out to examine his lorry and
                              found the rhino horn embedded in the wooden tail end of the lorry. The horn had been
                              wrenched right off!

                              Happily no excitement of that kind happened to us. I have yet to see a rhino.

                              Eleanor.

                              Oldeani. 19th July 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Greetings from a lady in waiting! Kate and I have settled down comfortably in the
                              new, solidly built Government Rest House which comprises one large living room and
                              one large office with a connecting door. Outside there is a kitchen and a boys quarter.
                              There are no resident Government officials here at Oldeani so the office is in use only
                              when the District Officer from Mbulu makes his monthly visit. However a large Union
                              Jack flies from a flagpole in the front of the building as a gentle reminder to the entirely
                              German population of Oldeani that Tanganyika is now under British rule.

                              There is quite a large community of German settlers here, most of whom are
                              engaged in coffee farming. George has visited several of the farms in connection with his
                              forestry work and says the coffee plantations look very promising indeed. There are also
                              a few German traders in the village and there is a large boarding school for German
                              children and also a very pleasant little hospital where I have arranged to have the baby.
                              Right next door to the Rest House is a General Dealers Store run by a couple named
                              Schnabbe. The shop is stocked with drapery, hardware, china and foodstuffs all
                              imported from Germany and of very good quality. The Schnabbes also sell local farm
                              produce, beautiful fresh vegetables, eggs and pure rich milk and farm butter. Our meat
                              comes from a German butchery and it is a great treat to get clean, well cut meat. The
                              sausages also are marvellous and in great variety.

                              The butcher is an entertaining character. When he called round looking for custom I
                              expected him to break out in a yodel any minute, as it was obvious from a glance that
                              the Alps are his natural background. From under a green Tyrollean hat with feather,
                              blooms a round beefy face with sparkling small eyes and such widely spaced teeth that
                              one inevitably thinks of a garden rake. Enormous beefy thighs bulge from greasy
                              lederhosen which are supported by the traditional embroidered braces. So far the
                              butcher is the only cheery German, male or female, whom I have seen, and I have met
                              most of the locals at the Schnabbe’s shop. Most of the men seem to have cultivated
                              the grim Hitler look. They are all fanatical Nazis and one is usually greeted by a raised
                              hand and Heil Hitler! All very theatrical. I always feel like crying in ringing tones ‘God
                              Save the King’ or even ‘St George for England’. However the men are all very correct
                              and courteous and the women friendly. The women all admire Kate and cry, “Ag, das
                              kleine Englander.” She really is a picture with her rosy cheeks and huge grey eyes and
                              golden curls. Kate is having a wonderful time playing with Manfried, the Scnabbe’s small
                              son. Neither understands a word said by the other but that doesn’t seem to worry them.

                              Before he left on safari, George took me to hospital for an examination by the
                              nurse, Sister Marianne. She has not been long in the country and knows very little
                              English but is determined to learn and carried on an animated, if rather quaint,
                              conversation with frequent references to a pocket dictionary. She says I am not to worry
                              because there is not doctor here. She is a very experienced midwife and anyway in an
                              emergency could call on the old retired Veterinary Surgeon for assistance.
                              I asked sister Marianne whether she knew of any German woman or girl who
                              would look after Kate whilst I am in hospital and today a very top drawer German,
                              bearing a strong likeness to ‘Little Willie’, called and offered the services of his niece who
                              is here on a visit from Germany. I was rather taken aback and said, “Oh no Baron, your
                              niece would not be the type I had in mind. I’m afraid I cannot pay much for a companion.”
                              However the Baron was not to be discouraged. He told me that his niece is seventeen
                              but looks twenty, that she is well educated and will make a cheerful companion. Her
                              father wishes her to learn to speak English fluently and that is why the Baron wished her
                              to come to me as a house daughter. As to pay, a couple of pounds a month for pocket
                              money and her keep was all he had in mind. So with some misgivings I agreed to take
                              the niece on as a companion as from 1st August.

                              Eleanor.

                              Oldeani. 10th August 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Never a dull moment since my young companion arrived. She is a striking looking
                              girl with a tall boyish figure and very short and very fine dark hair which she wears
                              severely slicked back. She wears tweeds, no make up but has shiny rosy cheeks and
                              perfect teeth – she also,inevitably, has a man friend and I have an uncomfortable
                              suspicion that it is because of him that she was planted upon me. Upon second
                              thoughts though, maybe it was because of her excessive vitality, or even because of
                              her healthy appetite! The Baroness, I hear is in poor health and I can imagine that such
                              abundant health and spirit must have been quite overpowering. The name is Ingeborg,
                              but she is called Mouche, which I believe means Mouse. Someone in her family must
                              have a sense of humour.

                              Her English only needed practice and she now chatters fluently so that I know her
                              background and views on life. Mouche’s father is a personal friend of Goering. He was
                              once a big noise in the German Airforce but is now connected with the car industry and
                              travels frequently and intensively in Europe and America on business. Mouche showed
                              me some snap shots of her family and I must say they look prosperous and charming.
                              Mouche tells me that her father wants her to learn to speak English fluently so that
                              she can get a job with some British diplomat in Cairo. I had immediate thought that I
                              might be nursing a future Mata Hari in my bosom, but this was immediately extinguished
                              when Mouche remarked that her father would like her to marry an Englishman. However
                              it seems that the mere idea revolts her. “Englishmen are degenerates who swill whisky
                              all day.” I pointed out that she had met George, who was a true blue Englishman, but
                              was nevertheless a fine physical specimen and certainly didn’t drink all day. Mouche
                              replied that George is not an Englishman but a hunter, as though that set him apart.
                              Mouche is an ardent Hitler fan and an enthusiastic member of the Hitler Youth
                              Movement. The house resounds with Hitler youth songs and when she is not singing,
                              her gramophone is playing very stirring marching songs. I cannot understand a word,
                              which is perhaps as well. Every day she does the most strenuous exercises watched
                              with envy by me as my proportions are now those of a circus Big Top. Mouche eats a
                              fantastic amount of meat and I feel it is a blessing that she is much admired by our
                              Tyrollean butcher who now delivers our meat in person and adds as a token of his
                              admiration some extra sausages for Mouche.

                              I must confess I find her stimulating company as George is on safari most of the
                              time and my evenings otherwise would be lonely. I am a little worried though about
                              leaving Kate here with Mouche when I go to hospital. The dogs and Kate have not taken
                              to her. I am trying to prepare Kate for the separation but she says, “She’s not my
                              mummy. You are my dear mummy, and I want you, I want you.” George has got
                              permission from the Provincial Forestry Officer to spend the last week of August here at
                              the Rest House with me and I only hope that the baby will be born during that time.
                              Kate adores her dad and will be perfectly happy to remain here with him.

                              One final paragraph about Mouche. I thought all German girls were domesticated
                              but not Mouche. I have Kesho-Kutwa here with me as cook and I have engaged a local
                              boy to do the laundry. I however expected Mouche would take over making the
                              puddings and pastry but she informed me that she can only bake a chocolate cake and
                              absolutely nothing else. She said brightly however that she would do the mending. As
                              there is none for her to do, she has rescued a large worn handkerchief of George’s and
                              sits with her feet up listening to stirring gramophone records whilst she mends the
                              handkerchief with exquisite darning.

                              Eleanor.

                              Oldeani. 20th August 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              Just after I had posted my last letter I received what George calls a demi official
                              letter from the District Officer informing me that I would have to move out of the Rest
                              House for a few days as the Governor and his hangers on would be visiting Oldeani
                              and would require the Rest House. Fortunately George happened to be here for a few
                              hours and he arranged for Kate and Mouche and me to spend a few days at the
                              German School as borders. So here I am at the school having a pleasant and restful
                              time and much entertained by all the goings on.

                              The school buildings were built with funds from Germany and the school is run on
                              the lines of a contemporary German school. I think the school gets a grant from the
                              Tanganyika Government towards running expenses, but I am not sure. The school hall is
                              dominated by a more than life sized oil painting of Adolf Hitler which, at present, is
                              flanked on one side by the German Flag and on the other by the Union Jack. I cannot
                              help feeling that the latter was put up today for the Governor’s visit today.
                              The teachers are very amiable. We all meet at mealtimes, and though few of the
                              teachers speak English, the ones who do are anxious to chatter. The headmaster is a
                              scholarly man but obviously anti-British. He says he cannot understand why so many
                              South Africans are loyal to Britain – or rather to England. “They conquered your country
                              didn’t they?” I said that that had never occurred to me and that anyway I was mainly of
                              Scots descent and that loyalty to the crown was natural to me. “But the English
                              conquered the Scots and yet you are loyal to England. That I cannot understand.” “Well I
                              love England,” said I firmly, ”and so do all British South Africans.” Since then we have
                              stuck to English literature. Shakespeare, Lord Byron and Galsworthy seem to be the
                              favourites and all, thank goodness, make safe topics for conversation.
                              Mouche is in her element but Kate and I do not enjoy the food which is typically
                              German and consists largely of masses of fat pork and sauerkraut and unfamiliar soups. I
                              feel sure that the soup at lunch today had blobs of lemon curd in it! I also find most
                              disconcerting the way that everyone looks at me and says, “Bon appetite”, with much
                              smiling and nodding so I have to fight down my nausea and make a show of enjoying
                              the meals.

                              The teacher whose room adjoins mine is a pleasant woman and I take my
                              afternoon tea with her. She, like all the teachers, has a large framed photo of Hitler on her
                              wall flanked by bracket vases of fresh flowers. One simply can’t get away from the man!
                              Even in the dormitories each child has a picture of Hitler above the bed. Hitler accepting
                              flowers from a small girl, or patting a small boy on the head. Even the children use the
                              greeting ‘Heil Hitler’. These German children seem unnaturally prim when compared with
                              my cheerful ex-pupils in South Africa but some of them are certainly very lovely to look
                              at.

                              Tomorrow Mouche, Kate and I return to our quarters in the Rest House and in a
                              few days George will join us for a week.

                              Eleanor.

                              Oldeani Hospital. 9th September 1938

                              Dearest Family,

                              You will all be delighted to hear that we have a second son, whom we have
                              named John. He is a darling, so quaint and good. He looks just like a little old man with a
                              high bald forehead fringed around the edges with a light brown fluff. George and I call
                              him Johnny Jo because he has a tiny round mouth and a rather big nose and reminds us
                              of A.A.Milne’s ‘Jonathan Jo has a mouth like an O’ , but Kate calls him, ‘My brother John’.
                              George was not here when he was born on September 5th, just two minutes
                              before midnight. He left on safari on the morning of the 4th and, of course, that very night
                              the labour pains started. Fortunately Kate was in bed asleep so Mouche walked with
                              me up the hill to the hospital where I was cheerfully received by Sister Marianne who
                              had everything ready for the confinement. I was lucky to have such an experienced
                              midwife because this was a breech birth and sister had to manage single handed. As
                              there was no doctor present I was not allowed even a sniff of anaesthetic. Sister slaved
                              away by the light of a pressure lamp endeavouring to turn the baby having first shoved
                              an inverted baby bath under my hips to raise them.

                              What a performance! Sister Marianne was very much afraid that she might not be
                              able to save the baby and great was our relief when at last she managed to haul him out
                              by the feet. One slap and the baby began to cry without any further attention so Sister
                              wrapped him up in a blanket and took Johnny to her room for the night. I got very little
                              sleep but was so thankful to have the ordeal over that I did not mind even though I
                              heard a hyaena cackling and calling under my window in a most evil way.
                              When Sister brought Johnny to me in the early morning I stared in astonishment.
                              Instead of dressing him in one of his soft Viyella nighties, she had dressed him in a short
                              sleeved vest of knitted cotton with a cotton cloth swayed around his waist sarong
                              fashion. When I protested, “But Sister why is the baby not dressed in his own clothes?”
                              She answered firmly, “I find it is not allowed. A baby’s clotheses must be boiled and I
                              cannot boil clotheses of wool therefore your baby must wear the clotheses of the Red
                              Cross.”

                              It was the same with the bedding. Poor Johnny lies all day in a deep wicker
                              basket with a detachable calico lining. There is no pillow under his head but a vast kind of
                              calico covered pillow is his only covering. There is nothing at all cosy and soft round my
                              poor baby. I said crossly to the Sister, “As every thing must be so sterile, I wonder you
                              don’t boil me too.” This she ignored.

                              When my message reached George he dashed back to visit us. Sister took him
                              first to see the baby and George was astonished to see the baby basket covered by a
                              sheet. “She has the poor little kid covered up like a bloody parrot,” he told me. So I
                              asked him to go at once to buy a square of mosquito netting to replace the sheet.
                              Kate is quite a problem. She behaves like an Angel when she is here in my
                              room but is rebellious when Sister shoos her out. She says she “Hates the Nanny”
                              which is what she calls Mouche. Unfortunately it seems that she woke before midnight
                              on the night Johnny Jo was born to find me gone and Mouche in my bed. According to
                              Mouche, Kate wept all night and certainly when she visited me in the early morning
                              Kate’s face was puffy with crying and she clung to me crying “Oh my dear mummy, why
                              did you go away?” over and over again. Sister Marianne was touched and suggested
                              that Mouche and Kate should come to the hospital as boarders as I am the only patient
                              at present and there is plenty of room. Luckily Kate does not seem at all jealous of the
                              baby and it is a great relief to have here here under my eye.

                              Eleanor.

                              #6264
                              TracyTracy
                              Participant

                                From Tanganyika with Love

                                continued  ~ part 5

                                With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                Chunya 16th December 1936

                                Dearest Family,

                                Since last I wrote I have visited Chunya and met several of the diggers wives.
                                On the whole I have been greatly disappointed because there is nothing very colourful
                                about either township or women. I suppose I was really expecting something more like
                                the goldrush towns and women I have so often seen on the cinema screen.
                                Chunya consists of just the usual sun-dried brick Indian shops though there are
                                one or two double storied buildings. Most of the life in the place centres on the
                                Goldfields Hotel but we did not call there. From the store opposite I could hear sounds
                                of revelry though it was very early in the afternoon. I saw only one sight which was quite
                                new to me, some elegantly dressed African women, with high heels and lipsticked
                                mouths teetered by on their way to the silk store. “Native Tarts,” said George in answer
                                to my enquiry.

                                Several women have called on me and when I say ‘called’ I mean called. I have
                                grown so used to going without stockings and wearing home made dresses that it was
                                quite a shock to me to entertain these ladies dressed to the nines in smart frocks, silk
                                stockings and high heeled shoes, handbags, makeup and whatnot. I feel like some
                                female Rip van Winkle. Most of the women have a smart line in conversation and their
                                talk and views on life would make your nice straight hair curl Mummy. They make me feel
                                very unsophisticated and dowdy but George says he has a weakness for such types
                                and I am to stay exactly as I am. I still do not use any makeup. George says ‘It’s all right
                                for them. They need it poor things, you don’t.” Which, though flattering, is hardly true.
                                I prefer the men visitors, though they also are quite unlike what I had expected
                                diggers to be. Those whom George brings home are all well educated and well
                                groomed and I enjoy listening to their discussion of the world situation, sport and books.
                                They are extremely polite to me and gentle with the children though I believe that after a
                                few drinks at the pub tempers often run high. There were great arguments on the night
                                following the abdication of Edward VIII. Not that the diggers were particularly attached to
                                him as a person, but these men are all great individualists and believe in freedom of
                                choice. George, rather to my surprise, strongly supported Edward. I did not.

                                Many of the diggers have wireless sets and so we keep up to date with the
                                news. I seldom leave camp. I have my hands full with the three children during the day
                                and, even though Janey is a reliable ayah, I would not care to leave the children at night
                                in these grass roofed huts. Having experienced that fire on the farm, I know just how
                                unlikely it would be that the children would be rescued in time in case of fire. The other
                                women on the diggings think I’m crazy. They leave their children almost entirely to ayahs
                                and I must confess that the children I have seen look very well and happy. The thing is
                                that I simply would not enjoy parties at the hotel or club, miles away from the children
                                and I much prefer to stay at home with a book.

                                I love hearing all about the parties from George who likes an occasional ‘boose
                                up’ with the boys and is terribly popular with everyone – not only the British but with the
                                Germans, Scandinavians and even the Afrikaans types. One Afrikaans woman said “Jou
                                man is ‘n man, al is hy ‘n Engelsman.” Another more sophisticated woman said, “George
                                is a handsome devil. Aren’t you scared to let him run around on his own?” – but I’m not. I
                                usually wait up for George with sandwiches and something hot to drink and that way I
                                get all the news red hot.

                                There is very little gold coming in. The rains have just started and digging is
                                temporarily at a standstill. It is too wet for dry blowing and not yet enough water for
                                panning and sluicing. As this camp is some considerable distance from the claims, all I see of the process is the weighing of the daily taking of gold dust and tiny nuggets.
                                Unless our luck changes I do not think we will stay on here after John Molteno returns.
                                George does not care for the life and prefers a more constructive occupation.
                                Ann and young George still search optimistically for gold. We were all saddened
                                last week by the death of Fanny, our bull terrier. She went down to the shopping centre
                                with us and we were standing on the verandah of a store when a lorry passed with its
                                canvas cover flapping. This excited Fanny who rushed out into the street and the back
                                wheel of the lorry passed right over her, killing her instantly. Ann was very shocked so I
                                soothed her by telling her that Fanny had gone to Heaven. When I went to bed that
                                night I found Ann still awake and she asked anxiously, “Mummy, do you think God
                                remembered to give Fanny her bone tonight?”

                                Much love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Itewe, Chunya 23rd December 1936

                                Dearest Family,

                                Your Christmas parcel arrived this morning. Thank you very much for all the
                                clothing for all of us and for the lovely toys for the children. George means to go hunting
                                for a young buffalo this afternoon so that we will have some fresh beef for Christmas for
                                ourselves and our boys and enough for friends too.

                                I had a fright this morning. Ann and Georgie were, as usual, searching for gold
                                whilst I sat sewing in the living room with Kate toddling around. She wandered through
                                the curtained doorway into the store and I heard her playing with the paraffin pump. At
                                first it did not bother me because I knew the tin was empty but after ten minutes or so I
                                became irritated by the noise and went to stop her. Imagine my horror when I drew the
                                curtain aside and saw my fat little toddler fiddling happily with the pump whilst, curled up
                                behind the tin and clearly visible to me lay the largest puffadder I have ever seen.
                                Luckily I acted instinctively and scooped Kate up from behind and darted back into the
                                living room without disturbing the snake. The houseboy and cook rushed in with sticks
                                and killed the snake and then turned the whole storeroom upside down to make sure
                                there were no more.

                                I have met some more picturesque characters since I last wrote. One is a man
                                called Bishop whom George has known for many years having first met him in the
                                Congo. I believe he was originally a sailor but for many years he has wandered around
                                Central Africa trying his hand at trading, prospecting, a bit of elephant hunting and ivory
                                poaching. He is now keeping himself by doing ‘Sign Writing”. Bish is a gentle and
                                dignified personality. When we visited his camp he carefully dusted a seat for me and
                                called me ‘Marm’, quite ye olde world. The only thing is he did spit.

                                Another spitter is the Frenchman in a neighbouring camp. He is in bed with bad
                                rheumatism and George has been going across twice a day to help him and cheer him
                                up. Once when George was out on the claim I went across to the Frenchman’s camp in
                                response to an SOS, but I think he was just lonely. He showed me snapshots of his
                                two daughters, lovely girls and extremely smart, and he chatted away telling me his life
                                history. He punctuated his remarks by spitting to right and left of the bed, everywhere in
                                fact, except actually at me.

                                George took me and the children to visit a couple called Bert and Hilda Farham.
                                They have a small gold reef which is worked by a very ‘Heath Robinson’ type of
                                machinery designed and erected by Bert who is reputed to be a clever engineer though
                                eccentric. He is rather a handsome man who always looks very spruce and neat and
                                wears a Captain Kettle beard. Hilda is from Johannesburg and quite a character. She
                                has a most generous figure and literally masses of beetroot red hair, but she also has a
                                warm deep voice and a most generous disposition. The Farhams have built
                                themselves a more permanent camp than most. They have a brick cottage with proper
                                doors and windows and have made it attractive with furniture contrived from petrol
                                boxes. They have no children but Hilda lavishes a great deal of affection on a pet
                                monkey. Sometimes they do quite well out of their gold and then they have a terrific
                                celebration at the Club or Pub and Hilda has an orgy of shopping. At other times they
                                are completely broke but Hilda takes disasters as well as triumphs all in her stride. She
                                says, “My dear, when we’re broke we just live on tea and cigarettes.”

                                I have met a young woman whom I would like as a friend. She has a dear little
                                baby, but unfortunately she has a very wet husband who is also a dreadful bore. I can’t
                                imagine George taking me to their camp very often. When they came to visit us George
                                just sat and smoked and said,”Oh really?” to any remark this man made until I felt quite
                                hysterical. George looks very young and fit and the children are lively and well too. I ,
                                however, am definitely showing signs of wear and tear though George says,
                                “Nonsense, to me you look the same as you always did.” This I may say, I do not
                                regard as a compliment to the young Eleanor.

                                Anyway, even though our future looks somewhat unsettled, we are all together
                                and very happy.

                                With love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Itewe, Chunya 30th December 1936

                                Dearest Family,

                                We had a very cheery Christmas. The children loved the toys and are so proud
                                of their new clothes. They wore them when we went to Christmas lunch to the
                                Cresswell-Georges. The C-Gs have been doing pretty well lately and they have a
                                comfortable brick house and a large wireless set. The living room was gaily decorated
                                with bought garlands and streamers and balloons. We had an excellent lunch cooked by
                                our ex cook Abel who now works for the Cresswell-Georges. We had turkey with
                                trimmings and plum pudding followed by nuts and raisons and chocolates and sweets
                                galore. There was also a large variety of drinks including champagne!

                                There were presents for all of us and, in addition, Georgie and Ann each got a
                                large tin of chocolates. Kate was much admired. She was a picture in her new party frock
                                with her bright hair and rosy cheeks. There were other guests beside ourselves and
                                they were already there having drinks when we arrived. Someone said “What a lovely
                                child!” “Yes” said George with pride, “She’s a Marie Stopes baby.” “Truby King!” said I
                                quickly and firmly, but too late to stop the roar of laughter.

                                Our children played amicably with the C-G’s three, but young George was
                                unusually quiet and surprised me by bringing me his unopened tin of chocolates to keep
                                for him. Normally he is a glutton for sweets. I might have guessed he was sickening for
                                something. That night he vomited and had diarrhoea and has had an upset tummy and a
                                slight temperature ever since.

                                Janey is also ill. She says she has malaria and has taken to her bed. I am dosing
                                her with quinine and hope she will soon be better as I badly need her help. Not only is
                                young George off his food and peevish but Kate has a cold and Ann sore eyes and
                                they all want love and attention. To complicate things it has been raining heavily and I
                                must entertain the children indoors.

                                Eleanor.

                                Itewe, Chunya 19th January 1937

                                Dearest Family,

                                So sorry I have not written before but we have been in the wars and I have had neither
                                the time nor the heart to write. However the worst is now over. Young George and
                                Janey are both recovering from Typhoid Fever. The doctor had Janey moved to the
                                native hospital at Chunya but I nursed young George here in the camp.

                                As I told you young George’s tummy trouble started on Christmas day. At first I
                                thought it was only a protracted bilious attack due to eating too much unaccustomed rich
                                food and treated him accordingly but when his temperature persisted I thought that the
                                trouble might be malaria and kept him in bed and increased the daily dose of quinine.
                                He ate less and less as the days passed and on New Years Day he seemed very
                                weak and his stomach tender to the touch.

                                George fetched the doctor who examined small George and said he had a very
                                large liver due no doubt to malaria. He gave the child injections of emertine and quinine
                                and told me to give young George frequent and copious drinks of water and bi-carb of
                                soda. This was more easily said than done. Young George refused to drink this mixture
                                and vomited up the lime juice and water the doctor had suggested as an alternative.
                                The doctor called every day and gave George further injections and advised me
                                to give him frequent sips of water from a spoon. After three days the child was very
                                weak and weepy but Dr Spiers still thought he had malaria. During those anxious days I
                                also worried about Janey who appeared to be getting worse rather that better and on
                                January the 3rd I asked the doctor to look at her. The next thing I knew, the doctor had
                                put Janey in his car and driven her off to hospital. When he called next morning he
                                looked very grave and said he wished to talk to my husband. I said that George was out
                                on the claim but if what he wished to say concerned young George’s condition he might
                                just as well tell me.

                                With a good deal of reluctance Dr Spiers then told me that Janey showed all the
                                symptoms of Typhoid Fever and that he was very much afraid that young George had
                                contracted it from her. He added that George should be taken to the Mbeya Hospital
                                where he could have the professional nursing so necessary in typhoid cases. I said “Oh
                                no,I’d never allow that. The child had never been away from his family before and it
                                would frighten him to death to be sick and alone amongst strangers.” Also I was sure that
                                the fifty mile drive over the mountains in his weak condition would harm him more than
                                my amateur nursing would. The doctor returned to the camp that afternoon to urge
                                George to send our son to hospital but George staunchly supported my argument that
                                young George would stand a much better chance of recovery if we nursed him at home.
                                I must say Dr Spiers took our refusal very well and gave young George every attention
                                coming twice a day to see him.

                                For some days the child was very ill. He could not keep down any food or liquid
                                in any quantity so all day long, and when he woke at night, I gave him a few drops of
                                water at a time from a teaspoon. His only nourishment came from sucking Macintosh’s
                                toffees. Young George sweated copiously especially at night when it was difficult to
                                change his clothes and sponge him in the draughty room with the rain teeming down
                                outside. I think I told you that the bedroom is a sort of shed with only openings in the wall
                                for windows and doors, and with one wall built only a couple of feet high leaving a six
                                foot gap for air and light. The roof leaked and the damp air blew in but somehow young
                                George pulled through.

                                Only when he was really on the mend did the doctor tell us that whilst he had
                                been attending George, he had also been called in to attend to another little boy of the same age who also had typhoid. He had been called in too late and the other little boy,
                                an only child, had died. Young George, thank God, is convalescent now, though still on a
                                milk diet. He is cheerful enough when he has company but very peevish when left
                                alone. Poor little lad, he is all hair, eyes, and teeth, or as Ann says” Georgie is all ribs ribs
                                now-a-days Mummy.” He shares my room, Ann and Kate are together in the little room.
                                Anyway the doctor says he should be up and around in about a week or ten days time.
                                We were all inoculated against typhoid on the day the doctor made the diagnosis
                                so it is unlikely that any of us will develop it. Dr Spiers was most impressed by Ann’s
                                unconcern when she was inoculated. She looks gentle and timid but has always been
                                very brave. Funny thing when young George was very ill he used to wail if I left the
                                room, but now that he is convalescent he greatly prefers his dad’s company. So now I
                                have been able to take the girls for walks in the late afternoons whilst big George
                                entertains small George. This he does with the minimum of effort, either he gets out
                                cartons of ammunition with which young George builds endless forts, or else he just sits
                                beside the bed and cleans one of his guns whilst small George watches with absorbed
                                attention.

                                The Doctor tells us that Janey is also now convalescent. He says that exhusband
                                Abel has been most attentive and appeared daily at the hospital with a tray of
                                food that made his, the doctor’s, mouth water. All I dare say, pinched from Mrs
                                Cresswell-George.

                                I’ll write again soon. Lots of love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Chunya 29th January 1937

                                Dearest Family,

                                Georgie is up and about but still tires very easily. At first his legs were so weak
                                that George used to carry him around on his shoulders. The doctor says that what the
                                child really needs is a long holiday out of the Tropics so that Mrs Thomas’ offer, to pay all
                                our fares to Cape Town as well as lending us her seaside cottage for a month, came as
                                a Godsend. Luckily my passport is in order. When George was in Mbeya he booked
                                seats for the children and me on the first available plane. We will fly to Broken Hill and go
                                on to Cape Town from there by train.

                                Ann and George are wildly thrilled at the idea of flying but I am not. I remember
                                only too well how airsick I was on the old Hannibal when I flew home with the baby Ann.
                                I am longing to see you all and it will be heaven to give the children their first seaside
                                holiday.

                                I mean to return with Kate after three months but, if you will have him, I shall leave
                                George behind with you for a year. You said you would all be delighted to have Ann so
                                I do hope you will also be happy to have young George. Together they are no trouble
                                at all. They amuse themselves and are very independent and loveable.
                                George and I have discussed the matter taking into consideration the letters from
                                you and George’s Mother on the subject. If you keep Ann and George for a year, my
                                mother-in-law will go to Cape Town next year and fetch them. They will live in England
                                with her until they are fit enough to return to the Tropics. After the children and I have left
                                on this holiday, George will be able to move around and look for a job that will pay
                                sufficiently to enable us to go to England in a few years time to fetch our children home.
                                We both feel very sad at the prospect of this parting but the children’s health
                                comes before any other consideration. I hope Kate will stand up better to the Tropics.
                                She is plump and rosy and could not look more bonny if she lived in a temperate
                                climate.

                                We should be with you in three weeks time!

                                Very much love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Broken Hill, N Rhodesia 11th February 1937

                                Dearest Family,

                                Well here we are safe and sound at the Great Northern Hotel, Broken Hill, all
                                ready to board the South bound train tonight.

                                We were still on the diggings on Ann’s birthday, February 8th, when George had
                                a letter from Mbeya to say that our seats were booked on the plane leaving Mbeya on
                                the 10th! What a rush we had packing up. Ann was in bed with malaria so we just
                                bundled her up in blankets and set out in John Molteno’s car for the farm. We arrived that
                                night and spent the next day on the farm sorting things out. Ann and George wanted to
                                take so many of their treasures and it was difficult for them to make a small selection. In
                                the end young George’s most treasured possession, his sturdy little boots, were left
                                behind.

                                Before leaving home on the morning of the tenth I took some snaps of Ann and
                                young George in the garden and one of them with their father. He looked so sad. After
                                putting us on the plane, George planned to go to the fishing camp for a day or two
                                before returning to the empty house on the farm.

                                John Molteno returned from the Cape by plane just before we took off, so he
                                will take over the running of his claims once more. I told John that I dreaded the plane trip
                                on account of air sickness so he gave me two pills which I took then and there. Oh dear!
                                How I wished later that I had not done so. We had an extremely bumpy trip and
                                everyone on the plane was sick except for small George who loved every moment.
                                Poor Ann had a dreadful time but coped very well and never complained. I did not
                                actually puke until shortly before we landed at Broken Hill but felt dreadfully ill all the way.
                                Kate remained rosy and cheerful almost to the end. She sat on my lap throughout the
                                trip because, being under age, she travelled as baggage and was not entitled to a seat.
                                Shortly before we reached Broken Hill a smartly dressed youngish man came up
                                to me and said, “You look so poorly, please let me take the baby, I have children of my
                                own and know how to handle them.” Kate made no protest and off they went to the
                                back of the plane whilst I tried to relax and concentrate on not getting sick. However,
                                within five minutes the man was back. Kate had been thoroughly sick all over his collar
                                and jacket.

                                I took Kate back on my lap and then was violently sick myself, so much so that
                                when we touched down at Broken Hill I was unable to speak to the Immigration Officer.
                                He was so kind. He sat beside me until I got my diaphragm under control and then
                                drove me up to the hotel in his own car.

                                We soon recovered of course and ate a hearty dinner. This morning after
                                breakfast I sallied out to look for a Bank where I could exchange some money into
                                Rhodesian and South African currency and for the Post Office so that I could telegraph
                                to George and to you. What a picnic that trip was! It was a terribly hot day and there was
                                no shade. By the time we had done our chores, the children were hot, and cross, and
                                tired and so indeed was I. As I had no push chair for Kate I had to carry her and she is
                                pretty heavy for eighteen months. George, who is still not strong, clung to my free arm
                                whilst Ann complained bitterly that no one was helping her.

                                Eventually Ann simply sat down on the pavement and declared that she could
                                not go another step, whereupon George of course decided that he also had reached his
                                limit and sat down too. Neither pleading no threats would move them so I had to resort
                                to bribery and had to promise that when we reached the hotel they could have cool
                                drinks and ice-cream. This promise got the children moving once more but I am determined that nothing will induce me to stir again until the taxi arrives to take us to the
                                station.

                                This letter will go by air and will reach you before we do. How I am longing for
                                journeys end.

                                With love to you all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Leaving home 10th February 1937,  George Gilman Rushby with Ann and Georgie (Mike) Rushby:

                                George Rushby Ann and Georgie

                                NOTE
                                We had a very warm welcome to the family home at Plumstead Cape Town.
                                After ten days with my family we moved to Hout Bay where Mrs Thomas lent us her
                                delightful seaside cottage. She also provided us with two excellent maids so I had
                                nothing to do but rest and play on the beach with the children.

                                After a month at the sea George had fully recovered his health though not his
                                former gay spirits. After another six months with my parents I set off for home with Kate,
                                leaving Ann and George in my parent’s home under the care of my elder sister,
                                Marjorie.

                                One or two incidents during that visit remain clearly in my memory. Our children
                                had never met elderly people and were astonished at the manifestations of age. One
                                morning an elderly lady came around to collect church dues. She was thin and stooped
                                and Ann surveyed her with awe. She turned to me with a puzzled expression and
                                asked in her clear voice, “Mummy, why has that old lady got a moustache – oh and a
                                beard?’ The old lady in question was very annoyed indeed and said, “What a rude little
                                girl.” Ann could not understand this, she said, “But Mummy, I only said she had a
                                moustache and a beard and she has.” So I explained as best I could that when people
                                have defects of this kind they are hurt if anyone mentions them.

                                A few days later a strange young woman came to tea. I had been told that she
                                had a most disfiguring birthmark on her cheek and warned Ann that she must not
                                comment on it. Alas! with the kindest intentions Ann once again caused me acute
                                embarrassment. The young woman was hardly seated when Ann went up to her and
                                gently patted the disfiguring mark saying sweetly, “Oh, I do like this horrible mark on your
                                face.”

                                I remember also the afternoon when Kate and George were christened. My
                                mother had given George a white silk shirt for the occasion and he wore it with intense
                                pride. Kate was baptised first without incident except that she was lost in admiration of a
                                gold bracelet given her that day by her Godmother and exclaimed happily, “My
                                bangle, look my bangle,” throughout the ceremony. When George’s turn came the
                                clergyman held his head over the font and poured water on George’s forehead. Some
                                splashed on his shirt and George protested angrily, “Mum, he has wet my shirt!” over
                                and over again whilst I led him hurriedly outside.

                                My last memory of all is at the railway station. The time had come for Kate and
                                me to get into our compartment. My sisters stood on the platform with Ann and George.
                                Ann was resigned to our going, George was not so, at the last moment Sylvia, my
                                younger sister, took him off to see the engine. The whistle blew and I said good-bye to
                                my gallant little Ann. “Mummy”, she said urgently to me, “Don’t forget to wave to
                                George.”

                                And so I waved good-bye to my children, never dreaming that a war would
                                intervene and it would be eight long years before I saw them again.

                                #6262
                                TracyTracy
                                Participant

                                  From Tanganyika with Love

                                  continued  ~ part 3

                                  With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 22nd March 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I am feeling much better now that I am five months pregnant and have quite got
                                  my appetite back. Once again I go out with “the Mchewe Hunt” which is what George
                                  calls the procession made up of the donkey boy and donkey with Ann confidently riding
                                  astride, me beside the donkey with Georgie behind riding the stick which he much
                                  prefers to the donkey. The Alsatian pup, whom Ann for some unknown reason named
                                  ‘Tubbage’, and the two cats bring up the rear though sometimes Tubbage rushes
                                  ahead and nearly knocks me off my feet. He is not the loveable pet that Kelly was.
                                  It is just as well that I have recovered my health because my mother-in-law has
                                  decided to fly out from England to look after Ann and George when I am in hospital. I am
                                  very grateful for there is no one lse to whom I can turn. Kath Hickson-Wood is seldom on
                                  their farm because Hicky is working a guano claim and is making quite a good thing out of
                                  selling bat guano to the coffee farmers at Mbosi. They camp out at the claim, a series of
                                  caves in the hills across the valley and visit the farm only occasionally. Anne Molteno is
                                  off to Cape Town to have her baby at her mothers home and there are no women in
                                  Mbeya I know well. The few women are Government Officials wives and they come
                                  and go. I make so few trips to the little town that there is no chance to get on really
                                  friendly terms with them.

                                  Janey, the ayah, is turning into a treasure. She washes and irons well and keeps
                                  the children’s clothes cupboard beautifully neat. Ann and George however are still
                                  reluctant to go for walks with her. They find her dull because, like all African ayahs, she
                                  has no imagination and cannot play with them. She should however be able to help with
                                  the baby. Ann is very excited about the new baby. She so loves all little things.
                                  Yesterday she went into ecstasies over ten newly hatched chicks.

                                  She wants a little sister and perhaps it would be a good thing. Georgie is so very
                                  active and full of mischief that I feel another wild little boy might be more than I can
                                  manage. Although Ann is older, it is Georgie who always thinks up the mischief. They
                                  have just been having a fight. Georgie with the cooks umbrella versus Ann with her frilly
                                  pink sunshade with the inevitable result that the sunshade now has four broken ribs.
                                  Any way I never feel lonely now during the long hours George is busy on the
                                  shamba. The children keep me on my toes and I have plenty of sewing to do for the
                                  baby. George is very good about amusing the children before their bedtime and on
                                  Sundays. In the afternoons when it is not wet I take Ann and Georgie for a walk down
                                  the hill. George meets us at the bottom and helps me on the homeward journey. He
                                  grabs one child in each hand by the slack of their dungarees and they do a sort of giant
                                  stride up the hill, half walking half riding.

                                  Very much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 14th June 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  A great flap here. We had a letter yesterday to say that mother-in-law will be
                                  arriving in four days time! George is very amused at my frantic efforts at spring cleaning
                                  but he has told me before that she is very house proud so I feel I must make the best
                                  of what we have.

                                  George is very busy building a store for the coffee which will soon be ripening.
                                  This time he is doing the bricklaying himself. It is quite a big building on the far end of the
                                  farm and close to the river. He is also making trays of chicken wire nailed to wooden
                                  frames with cheap calico stretched over the wire.

                                  Mother will have to sleep in the verandah room which leads off the bedroom
                                  which we share with the children. George will have to sleep in the outside spare room as
                                  there is no door between the bedroom and the verandah room. I am sewing frantically
                                  to make rose coloured curtains and bedspread out of material mother-in-law sent for
                                  Christmas and will have to make a curtain for the doorway. The kitchen badly needs
                                  whitewashing but George says he cannot spare the labour so I hope mother won’t look.
                                  To complicate matters, George has been invited to lunch with the Governor on the day
                                  of Mother’s arrival. After lunch they are to visit the newly stocked trout streams in the
                                  Mporotos. I hope he gets back to Mbeya in good time to meet mother’s plane.
                                  Ann has been off colour for a week. She looks very pale and her pretty fair hair,
                                  normally so shiny, is dull and lifeless. It is such a pity that mother should see her like this
                                  because first impressions do count so much and I am looking to the children to attract
                                  attention from me. I am the size of a circus tent and hardly a dream daughter-in-law.
                                  Georgie, thank goodness, is blooming but he has suddenly developed a disgusting
                                  habit of spitting on the floor in the manner of the natives. I feel he might say “Gran, look
                                  how far I can spit and give an enthusiastic demonstration.

                                  Just hold thumbs that all goes well.

                                  your loving but anxious,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 28th June 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Mother-in-law duly arrived in the District Commissioner’s car. George did not dare
                                  to use the A.C. as she is being very temperamental just now. They also brought the
                                  mail bag which contained a parcel of lovely baby clothes from you. Thank you very
                                  much. Mother-in-law is very put out because the large parcel she posted by surface
                                  mail has not yet arrived.

                                  Mother arrived looking very smart in an ankle length afternoon frock of golden
                                  brown crepe and smart hat, and wearing some very good rings. She is a very
                                  handsome woman with the very fair complexion that goes with red hair. The hair, once
                                  Titan, must now be grey but it has been very successfully tinted and set. I of course,
                                  was shapeless in a cotton maternity frock and no credit to you. However, so far, motherin-
                                  law has been uncritical and friendly and charmed with the children who have taken to
                                  her. Mother does not think that the children resemble me in any way. Ann resembles her
                                  family the Purdys and Georgie is a Morley, her mother’s family. She says they had the
                                  same dark eyes and rather full mouths. I say feebly, “But Georgie has my colouring”, but
                                  mother won’t hear of it. So now you know! Ann is a Purdy and Georgie a Morley.
                                  Perhaps number three will be a Leslie.

                                  What a scramble I had getting ready for mother. Her little room really looks pretty
                                  and fresh, but the locally woven grass mats arrived only minutes before mother did. I
                                  also frantically overhauled our clothes and it a good thing that I did so because mother
                                  has been going through all the cupboards looking for mending. Mother is kept so busy
                                  in her own home that I think she finds time hangs on her hands here. She is very good at
                                  entertaining the children and has even tried her hand at picking coffee a couple of times.
                                  Mother cannot get used to the native boy servants but likes Janey, so Janey keeps her
                                  room in order. Mother prefers to wash and iron her own clothes.

                                  I almost lost our cook through mother’s surplus energy! Abel our previous cook
                                  took a new wife last month and, as the new wife, and Janey the old, were daggers
                                  drawn, Abel moved off to a job on the Lupa leaving Janey and her daughter here.
                                  The new cook is capable, but he is a fearsome looking individual called Alfani. He has a
                                  thick fuzz of hair which he wears long, sometimes hidden by a dingy turban, and he
                                  wears big brass earrings. I think he must be part Somali because he has a hawk nose
                                  and a real Brigand look. His kitchen is never really clean but he is an excellent cook and
                                  as cooks are hard to come by here I just keep away from the kitchen. Not so mother!
                                  A few days after her arrival she suggested kindly that I should lie down after lunch
                                  so I rested with the children whilst mother, unknown to me, went out to the kitchen and
                                  not only scrubbed the table and shelves but took the old iron stove to pieces and
                                  cleaned that. Unfortunately in her zeal she poked a hole through the stove pipe.
                                  Had I known of these activities I would have foreseen the cook’s reaction when
                                  he returned that evening to cook the supper. he was furious and wished to leave on the
                                  spot and demanded his wages forthwith. The old Memsahib had insulted him by
                                  scrubbing his already spotless kitchen and had broken his stove and made it impossible
                                  for him to cook. This tirade was accompanied by such waving of hands and rolling of
                                  eyes that I longed to sack him on the spot. However I dared not as I might not get
                                  another cook for weeks. So I smoothed him down and he patched up the stove pipe
                                  with a bit of tin and some wire and produced a good meal. I am wondering what
                                  transformations will be worked when I am in hospital.

                                  Our food is really good but mother just pecks at it. No wonder really, because
                                  she has had some shocks. One day she found the kitchen boy diligently scrubbing the box lavatory seat with a scrubbing brush which he dipped into one of my best large
                                  saucepans! No one can foresee what these boys will do. In these remote areas house
                                  servants are usually recruited from the ranks of the very primitive farm labourers, who first
                                  come to the farm as naked savages, and their notions of hygiene simply don’t exist.
                                  One day I said to mother in George’s presence “When we were newly married,
                                  mother, George used to brag about your cooking and say that you would run a home
                                  like this yourself with perhaps one ‘toto’. Mother replied tartly, “That was very bad of
                                  George and not true. If my husband had brought me out here I would not have stayed a
                                  month. I think you manage very well.” Which reply made me warm to mother a lot.
                                  To complicate things we have a new pup, a little white bull terrier bitch whom
                                  George has named Fanny. She is tiny and not yet house trained but seems a plucky
                                  and attractive little animal though there is no denying that she does look like a piglet.

                                  Very much love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 3rd August 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Here I am in hospital, comfortably in bed with our new daughter in her basket
                                  beside me. She is a lovely little thing, very plump and cuddly and pink and white and
                                  her head is covered with tiny curls the colour of Golden Syrup. We meant to call her
                                  Margery Kate, after our Marj and my mother-in-law whose name is Catherine.
                                  I am enjoying the rest, knowing that George and mother will be coping
                                  successfully on the farm. My room is full of flowers, particularly with the roses and
                                  carnations which grow so well here. Kate was not due until August 5th but the doctor
                                  wanted me to come in good time in view of my tiresome early pregnancy.

                                  For weeks beforehand George had tinkered with the A.C. and we started for
                                  Mbeya gaily enough on the twenty ninth, however, after going like a dream for a couple
                                  of miles, she simply collapsed from exhaustion at the foot of a hill and all the efforts of
                                  the farm boys who had been sent ahead for such an emergency failed to start her. So
                                  George sent back to the farm for the machila and I sat in the shade of a tree, wondering
                                  what would happen if I had the baby there and then, whilst George went on tinkering
                                  with the car. Suddenly she sprang into life and we roared up that hill and all the way into
                                  Mbeya. The doctor welcomed us pleasantly and we had tea with his family before I
                                  settled into my room. Later he examined me and said that it was unlikely that the baby
                                  would be born for several days. The new and efficient German nurse said, “Thank
                                  goodness for that.” There was a man in hospital dying from a stomach cancer and she
                                  had not had a decent nights sleep for three nights.

                                  Kate however had other plans. I woke in the early morning with labour pains but
                                  anxious not to disturb the nurse, I lay and read or tried to read a book, hoping that I
                                  would not have to call the nurse until daybreak. However at four a.m., I went out into the
                                  wind which was howling along the open verandah and knocked on the nurse’s door. She
                                  got up and very crossly informed me that I was imagining things and should get back to
                                  bed at once. She said “It cannot be so. The Doctor has said it.” I said “Of course it is,”
                                  and then and there the water broke and clinched my argument. She then went into a flat
                                  spin. “But the bed is not ready and my instruments are not ready,” and she flew around
                                  to rectify this and also sent an African orderly to call the doctor. I paced the floor saying
                                  warningly “Hurry up with that bed. I am going to have the baby now!” She shrieked
                                  “Take off your dressing gown.” But I was passed caring. I flung myself on the bed and
                                  there was Kate. The nurse had done all that was necessary by the time the doctor
                                  arrived.

                                  A funny thing was, that whilst Kate was being born on the bed, a black cat had
                                  kittens under it! The doctor was furious with the nurse but the poor thing must have crept
                                  in out of the cold wind when I went to call the nurse. A happy omen I feel for the baby’s
                                  future. George had no anxiety this time. He stayed at the hospital with me until ten
                                  o’clock when he went down to the hotel to sleep and he received the news in a note
                                  from me with his early morning tea. He went to the farm next morning but will return on
                                  the sixth to fetch me home.

                                  I do feel so happy. A very special husband and three lovely children. What
                                  more could anyone possibly want.

                                  Lots and lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 20th August 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Well here we are back at home and all is very well. The new baby is very placid
                                  and so pretty. Mother is delighted with her and Ann loved her at sight but Georgie is not
                                  so sure. At first he said, “Your baby is no good. Chuck her in the kalonga.” The kalonga
                                  being the ravine beside the house , where, I regret to say, much of the kitchen refuse is
                                  dumped. he is very jealous when I carry Kate around or feed her but is ready to admire
                                  her when she is lying alone in her basket.

                                  George walked all the way from the farm to fetch us home. He hired a car and
                                  native driver from the hotel, but drove us home himself going with such care over ruts
                                  and bumps. We had a great welcome from mother who had had the whole house
                                  spring cleaned. However George loyally says it looks just as nice when I am in charge.
                                  Mother obviously, had had more than enough of the back of beyond and
                                  decided to stay on only one week after my return home. She had gone into the kitchen
                                  one day just in time to see the houseboy scooping the custard he had spilt on the table
                                  back into the jug with the side of his hand. No doubt it would have been served up
                                  without a word. On another occasion she had walked in on the cook’s daily ablutions. He
                                  was standing in a small bowl of water in the centre of the kitchen, absolutely naked,
                                  enjoying a slipper bath. She left last Wednesday and gave us a big laugh before she
                                  left. She never got over her horror of eating food prepared by our cook and used to
                                  push it around her plate. Well, when the time came for mother to leave for the plane, she
                                  put on the very smart frock in which she had arrived, and then came into the sitting room
                                  exclaiming in dismay “Just look what has happened, I must have lost a stone!’ We
                                  looked, and sure enough, the dress which had been ankle deep before, now touched
                                  the floor. “Good show mother.” said George unfeelingly. “You ought to be jolly grateful,
                                  you needed to lose weight and it would have cost you the earth at a beauty parlour to
                                  get that sylph-like figure.”

                                  When mother left she took, in a perforated matchbox, one of the frilly mantis that
                                  live on our roses. She means to keep it in a goldfish bowl in her dining room at home.
                                  Georgie and Ann filled another matchbox with dead flies for food for the mantis on the
                                  journey.

                                  Now that mother has left, Georgie and Ann attach themselves to me and firmly
                                  refuse to have anything to do with the ayah,Janey. She in any case now wishes to have
                                  a rest. Mother tipped her well and gave her several cotton frocks so I suspect she wants
                                  to go back to her hometown in Northern Rhodesia to show off a bit.
                                  Georgie has just sidled up with a very roguish look. He asked “You like your
                                  baby?” I said “Yes indeed I do.” He said “I’ll prick your baby with a velly big thorn.”

                                  Who would be a mother!
                                  Eleanor

                                  Mchewe Estate. 20th September 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I have been rather in the wars with toothache and as there is still no dentist at
                                  Mbeya to do the fillings, I had to have four molars extracted at the hospital. George
                                  says it is fascinating to watch me at mealtimes these days because there is such a gleam
                                  of satisfaction in my eye when I do manage to get two teeth to meet on a mouthful.
                                  About those scissors Marj sent Ann. It was not such a good idea. First she cut off tufts of
                                  George’s hair so that he now looks like a bad case of ringworm and then she cut a scalp
                                  lock, a whole fist full of her own shining hair, which George so loves. George scolded
                                  Ann and she burst into floods of tears. Such a thing as a scolding from her darling daddy
                                  had never happened before. George immediately made a long drooping moustache
                                  out of the shorn lock and soon had her smiling again. George is always very gentle with
                                  Ann. One has to be , because she is frightfully sensitive to criticism.

                                  I am kept pretty busy these days, Janey has left and my houseboy has been ill
                                  with pneumonia. I now have to wash all the children’s things and my own, (the cook does
                                  George’s clothes) and look after the three children. Believe me, I can hardly keep awake
                                  for Kate’s ten o’clock feed.

                                  I do hope I shall get some new servants next month because I also got George
                                  to give notice to the cook. I intercepted him last week as he was storming down the hill
                                  with my large kitchen knife in his hand. “Where are you going with my knife?” I asked.
                                  “I’m going to kill a man!” said Alfani, rolling his eyes and looking extremely ferocious. “He
                                  has taken my wife.” “Not with my knife”, said I reaching for it. So off Alfani went, bent on
                                  vengeance and I returned the knife to the kitchen. Dinner was served and I made no
                                  enquiries but I feel that I need someone more restful in the kitchen than our brigand
                                  Alfani.

                                  George has been working on the car and has now fitted yet another radiator. This
                                  is a lorry one and much too tall to be covered by the A.C.’s elegant bonnet which is
                                  secured by an old strap. The poor old A.C. now looks like an ancient shoe with a turned
                                  up toe. It only needs me in it with the children to make a fine illustration to the old rhyme!
                                  Ann and Georgie are going through a climbing phase. They practically live in
                                  trees. I rushed out this morning to investigate loud screams and found Georgie hanging
                                  from a fork in a tree by one ankle, whilst Ann stood below on tiptoe with hands stretched
                                  upwards to support his head.

                                  Do I sound as though I have straws in my hair? I have.
                                  Lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 11th October 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Thank goodness! I have a new ayah name Mary. I had heard that there was a
                                  good ayah out of work at Tukuyu 60 miles away so sent a messenger to fetch her. She
                                  arrived after dark wearing a bright dress and a cheerful smile and looked very suitable by
                                  the light of a storm lamp. I was horrified next morning to see her in daylight. She was
                                  dressed all in black and had a rather sinister look. She reminds me rather of your old maid
                                  Candace who overheard me laughing a few days before Ann was born and croaked
                                  “Yes , Miss Eleanor, today you laugh but next week you might be dead.” Remember
                                  how livid you were, dad?

                                  I think Mary has the same grim philosophy. Ann took one look at her and said,
                                  “What a horrible old lady, mummy.” Georgie just said “Go away”, both in English and Ki-
                                  Swahili. Anyway Mary’s references are good so I shall keep her on to help with Kate
                                  who is thriving and bonny and placid.

                                  Thank you for the offer of toys for Christmas but, if you don’t mind, I’d rather have
                                  some clothing for the children. Ann is quite contented with her dolls Barbara and Yvonne.
                                  Barbara’s once beautiful face is now pieced together like a jigsaw puzzle having come
                                  into contact with Georgie’s ever busy hammer. However Ann says she will love her for
                                  ever and she doesn’t want another doll. Yvonne’s hay day is over too. She
                                  disappeared for weeks and we think Fanny, the pup, was the culprit. Ann discovered
                                  Yvonne one morning in some long wet weeds. Poor Yvonne is now a ghost of her
                                  former self. All the sophisticated make up was washed off her papier-mâché face and
                                  her hair is decidedly bedraggled, but Ann was radiant as she tucked her back into bed
                                  and Yvonne is as precious to Ann as she ever was.

                                  Georgie simply does not care for toys. His paint box, hammer and the trenching
                                  hoe George gave him for his second birthday are all he wants or needs. Both children
                                  love books but I sometimes wonder whether they stimulate Ann’s imagination too much.
                                  The characters all become friends of hers and she makes up stories about them to tell
                                  Georgie. She adores that illustrated children’s Bible Mummy sent her but you would be
                                  astonished at the yarns she spins about “me and my friend Jesus.” She also will call
                                  Moses “Old Noses”, and looking at a picture of Jacob’s dream, with the shining angels
                                  on the ladder between heaven and earth, she said “Georgie, if you see an angel, don’t
                                  touch it, it’s hot.”

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 17th October 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I take back the disparaging things I said about my new Ayah, because she has
                                  proved her worth in an unexpected way. On Wednesday morning I settled Kate in he
                                  cot after her ten o’clock feed and sat sewing at the dining room table with Ann and
                                  Georgie opposite me, both absorbed in painting pictures in identical seed catalogues.
                                  Suddenly there was a terrific bang on the back door, followed by an even heavier blow.
                                  The door was just behind me and I got up and opened it. There, almost filling the door
                                  frame, stood a huge native with staring eyes and his teeth showing in a mad grimace. In
                                  his hand he held a rolled umbrella by the ferrule, the shaft I noticed was unusually long
                                  and thick and the handle was a big round knob.

                                  I was terrified as you can imagine, especially as, through the gap under the
                                  native’s raised arm, I could see the new cook and the kitchen boy running away down to
                                  the shamba! I hastily tried to shut and lock the door but the man just brushed me aside.
                                  For a moment he stood over me with the umbrella raised as though to strike. Rather
                                  fortunately, I now think, I was too petrified to say a word. The children never moved but
                                  Tubbage, the Alsatian, got up and jumped out of the window!

                                  Then the native turned away and still with the same fixed stare and grimace,
                                  began to attack the furniture with his umbrella. Tables and chairs were overturned and
                                  books and ornaments scattered on the floor. When the madman had his back turned and
                                  was busily bashing the couch, I slipped round the dining room table, took Ann and
                                  Georgie by the hand and fled through the front door to the garage where I hid the
                                  children in the car. All this took several minutes because naturally the children were
                                  terrified. I was worried to death about the baby left alone in the bedroom and as soon
                                  as I had Ann and Georgie settled I ran back to the house.

                                  I reached the now open front door just as Kianda the houseboy opened the back
                                  door of the lounge. He had been away at the river washing clothes but, on hearing of the
                                  madman from the kitchen boy he had armed himself with a stout stick and very pluckily,
                                  because he is not a robust boy, had returned to the house to eject the intruder. He
                                  rushed to attack immediately and I heard a terrific exchange of blows behind me as I
                                  opened our bedroom door. You can imagine what my feelings were when I was
                                  confronted by an empty cot! Just then there was an uproar inside as all the farm
                                  labourers armed with hoes and pangas and sticks, streamed into the living room from the
                                  shamba whence they had been summoned by the cook. In no time at all the huge
                                  native was hustled out of the house, flung down the front steps, and securely tied up
                                  with strips of cloth.

                                  In the lull that followed I heard a frightened voice calling from the bathroom.
                                  ”Memsahib is that you? The child is here with me.” I hastily opened the bathroom door
                                  to find Mary couched in a corner by the bath, shielding Kate with her body. Mary had
                                  seen the big native enter the house and her first thought had been for her charge. I
                                  thanked her and promised her a reward for her loyalty, and quickly returned to the garage
                                  to reassure Ann and Georgie. I met George who looked white and exhausted as well
                                  he might having run up hill all the way from the coffee store. The kitchen boy had led him
                                  to expect the worst and he was most relieved to find us all unhurt if a bit shaken.
                                  We returned to the house by the back way whilst George went to the front and
                                  ordered our labourers to take their prisoner and lock him up in the store. George then
                                  discussed the whole affair with his Headman and all the labourers after which he reported
                                  to me. “The boys say that the bastard is an ex-Askari from Nyasaland. He is not mad as
                                  you thought but he smokes bhang and has these attacks. I suppose I should take him to
                                  Mbeya and have him up in court. But if I do that you’ll have to give evidence and that will be a nuisance as the car won’t go and there is also the baby to consider.”

                                  Eventually we decided to leave the man to sleep off the effects of the Bhang
                                  until evening when he would be tried before an impromptu court consisting of George,
                                  the local Jumbe(Headman) and village Elders, and our own farm boys and any other
                                  interested spectators. It was not long before I knew the verdict because I heard the
                                  sound of lashes. I was not sorry at all because I felt the man deserved his punishment
                                  and so did all the Africans. They love children and despise anyone who harms or
                                  frightens them. With great enthusiasm they frog-marched him off our land, and I sincerely
                                  hope that that is the last we see or him. Ann and Georgie don’t seem to brood over this
                                  affair at all. The man was naughty and he was spanked, a quite reasonable state of
                                  affairs. This morning they hid away in the small thatched chicken house. This is a little brick
                                  building about four feet square which Ann covets as a dolls house. They came back
                                  covered in stick fleas which I had to remove with paraffin. My hens are laying well but
                                  they all have the ‘gapes’! I wouldn’t run a chicken farm for anything, hens are such fussy,
                                  squawking things.

                                  Now don’t go worrying about my experience with the native. Such things
                                  happen only once in a lifetime. We are all very well and happy, and life, apart from the
                                  children’s pranks is very tranquil.

                                  Lots and lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 25th October 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  The hot winds have dried up the shamba alarmingly and we hope every day for
                                  rain. The prices for coffee, on the London market, continue to be low and the local
                                  planters are very depressed. Coffee grows well enough here but we are over 400
                                  miles from the railway and transport to the railhead by lorry is very expensive. Then, as
                                  there is no East African Marketing Board, the coffee must be shipped to England for
                                  sale. Unless the coffee fetches at least 90 pounds a ton it simply doesn’t pay to grow it.
                                  When we started planting in 1931 coffee was fetching as much as 115 pounds a ton but
                                  prices this year were between 45 and 55 pounds. We have practically exhausted our
                                  capitol and so have all our neighbours. The Hickson -Woods have been keeping their
                                  pot boiling by selling bat guano to the coffee farmers at Mbosi but now everyone is
                                  broke and there is not a market for fertilisers. They are offering their farm for sale at a very
                                  low price.

                                  Major Jones has got a job working on the district roads and Max Coster talks of
                                  returning to his work as a geologist. George says he will have to go gold digging on the
                                  Lupa unless there is a big improvement in the market. Luckily we can live quite cheaply
                                  here. We have a good vegetable garden, milk is cheap and we have plenty of fruit.
                                  There are mulberries, pawpaws, grenadillas, peaches, and wine berries. The wine
                                  berries are very pretty but insipid though Ann and Georgie love them. Each morning,
                                  before breakfast, the old garden boy brings berries for Ann and Georgie. With a thorn
                                  the old man pins a large leaf from a wild fig tree into a cone which he fills with scarlet wine
                                  berries. There is always a cone for each child and they wait eagerly outside for the daily
                                  ceremony of presentation.

                                  The rats are being a nuisance again. Both our cats, Skinny Winnie and Blackboy
                                  disappeared a few weeks ago. We think they made a meal for a leopard. I wrote last
                                  week to our grocer at Mbalizi asking him whether he could let us have a couple of kittens
                                  as I have often seen cats in his store. The messenger returned with a nailed down box.
                                  The kitchen boy was called to prize up the lid and the children stood by in eager
                                  anticipation. Out jumped two snarling and spitting creatures. One rushed into the kalonga
                                  and the other into the house and before they were captured they had drawn blood from
                                  several boys. I told the boys to replace the cats in the box as I intended to return them
                                  forthwith. They had the colouring, stripes and dispositions of wild cats and I certainly
                                  didn’t want them as pets, but before the boys could replace the lid the cats escaped
                                  once more into the undergrowth in the kalonga. George fetched his shotgun and said he
                                  would shoot the cats on sight or they would kill our chickens. This was more easily said
                                  than done because the cats could not be found. However during the night the cats
                                  climbed up into the loft af the house and we could hear them moving around on the reed
                                  ceiling.

                                  I said to George,”Oh leave the poor things. At least they might frighten the rats
                                  away.” That afternoon as we were having tea a thin stream of liquid filtered through the
                                  ceiling on George’s head. Oh dear!!! That of course was the end. Some raw meat was
                                  put on the lawn for bait and yesterday George shot both cats.

                                  I regret to end with the sad story of Mary, heroine in my last letter and outcast in
                                  this. She came to work quite drunk two days running and I simply had to get rid of her. I
                                  have heard since from Kath Wood that Mary lost her last job at Tukuyu for the same
                                  reason. She was ayah to twin girls and one day set their pram on fire.

                                  So once again my hands are more than full with three lively children. I did say
                                  didn’t I, when Ann was born that I wanted six children?

                                  Very much love from us all, Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 8th November 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  To set your minds at rest I must tell you that the native who so frightened me and
                                  the children is now in jail for attacking a Greek at Mbalizi. I hear he is to be sent back to
                                  Rhodesia when he has finished his sentence.

                                  Yesterday we had one of our rare trips to Mbeya. George managed to get a couple of
                                  second hand tyres for the old car and had again got her to work so we are celebrating our
                                  wedding anniversary by going on an outing. I wore the green and fawn striped silk dress
                                  mother bought me and the hat and shoes you sent for my birthday and felt like a million
                                  dollars, for a change. The children all wore new clothes too and I felt very proud of them.
                                  Ann is still very fair and with her refined little features and straight silky hair she
                                  looks like Alice in Wonderland. Georgie is dark and sturdy and looks best in khaki shirt
                                  and shorts and sun helmet. Kate is a pink and gold baby and looks good enough to eat.
                                  We went straight to the hotel at Mbeya and had the usual warm welcome from
                                  Ken and Aunty May Menzies. Aunty May wears her hair cut short like a mans and
                                  usually wears shirt and tie and riding breeches and boots. She always looks ready to go
                                  on safari at a moments notice as indeed she is. She is often called out to a case of illness
                                  at some remote spot.

                                  There were lots of people at the hotel from farms in the district and from the
                                  diggings. I met women I had not seen for four years. One, a Mrs Masters from Tukuyu,
                                  said in the lounge, “My God! Last time I saw you , you were just a girl and here you are
                                  now with two children.” To which I replied with pride, “There is another one in a pram on
                                  the verandah if you care to look!” Great hilarity in the lounge. The people from the
                                  diggings seem to have plenty of money to throw around. There was a big party on the
                                  go in the bar.

                                  One of our shamba boys died last Friday and all his fellow workers and our
                                  house boys had the day off to attend the funeral. From what I can gather the local
                                  funerals are quite cheery affairs. The corpse is dressed in his best clothes and laid
                                  outside his hut and all who are interested may view the body and pay their respects.
                                  The heir then calls upon anyone who had a grudge against the dead man to say his say
                                  and thereafter hold his tongue forever. Then all the friends pay tribute to the dead man
                                  after which he is buried to the accompaniment of what sounds from a distance, very
                                  cheerful keening.

                                  Most of our workmen are pagans though there is a Lutheran Mission nearby and
                                  a big Roman Catholic Mission in the area too. My present cook, however, claims to be
                                  a Christian. He certainly went to a mission school and can read and write and also sing
                                  hymns in Ki-Swahili. When I first engaged him I used to find a large open Bible
                                  prominently displayed on the kitchen table. The cook is middle aged and arrived here
                                  with a sensible matronly wife. To my surprise one day he brought along a young girl,
                                  very plump and giggly and announced proudly that she was his new wife, I said,”But I
                                  thought you were a Christian Jeremiah? Christians don’t have two wives.” To which he
                                  replied, “Oh Memsahib, God won’t mind. He knows an African needs two wives – one
                                  to go with him when he goes away to work and one to stay behind at home to cultivate
                                  the shamba.

                                  Needles to say, it is the old wife who has gone to till the family plot.

                                  With love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 21st November 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  The drought has broken with a bang. We had a heavy storm in the hills behind
                                  the house. Hail fell thick and fast. So nice for all the tiny new berries on the coffee! The
                                  kids loved the excitement and three times Ann and Georgie ran out for a shower under
                                  the eaves and had to be changed. After the third time I was fed up and made them both
                                  lie on their beds whilst George and I had lunch in peace. I told Ann to keep the
                                  casement shut as otherwise the rain would drive in on her bed. Half way through lunch I
                                  heard delighted squeals from Georgie and went into the bedroom to investigate. Ann
                                  was standing on the outer sill in the rain but had shut the window as ordered. “Well
                                  Mummy , you didn’t say I mustn’t stand on the window sill, and I did shut the window.”
                                  George is working so hard on the farm. I have a horrible feeling however that it is
                                  what the Africans call ‘Kazi buri’ (waste of effort) as there seems no chance of the price of
                                  coffee improving as long as this world depression continues. The worry is that our capitol
                                  is nearly exhausted. Food is becoming difficult now that our neighbours have left. I used
                                  to buy delicious butter from Kath Hickson-Wood and an African butcher used to kill a
                                  beast once a week. Now that we are his only European customers he very rarely kills
                                  anything larger than a goat, and though we do eat goat, believe me it is not from choice.
                                  We have of course got plenty to eat, but our diet is very monotonous. I was
                                  delighted when George shot a large bushbuck last week. What we could not use I cut
                                  into strips and the salted strips are now hanging in the open garage to dry.

                                  With love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 6th December 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  We have had a lot of rain and the countryside is lovely and green. Last week
                                  George went to Mbeya taking Ann with him. This was a big adventure for Ann because
                                  never before had she been anywhere without me. She was in a most blissful state as
                                  she drove off in the old car clutching a little basket containing sandwiches and half a bottle
                                  of milk. She looked so pretty in a new blue frock and with her tiny plaits tied with
                                  matching blue ribbons. When Ann is animated she looks charming because her normally
                                  pale cheeks become rosy and she shows her pretty dimples.

                                  As I am still without an ayah I rather looked forward to a quiet morning with only
                                  Georgie and Margery Kate to care for, but Georgie found it dull without Ann and wanted
                                  to be entertained and even the normally placid baby was peevish. Then in mid morning
                                  the rain came down in torrents, the result of a cloudburst in the hills directly behind our
                                  house. The ravine next to our house was a terrifying sight. It appeared to be a great
                                  muddy, roaring waterfall reaching from the very top of the hill to a point about 30 yards
                                  behind our house and then the stream rushed on down the gorge in an angry brown
                                  flood. The roar of the water was so great that we had to yell at one another to be heard.
                                  By lunch time the rain had stopped and I anxiously awaited the return of Ann and
                                  George. They returned on foot, drenched and hungry at about 2.30pm . George had
                                  had to abandon the car on the main road as the Mchewe River had overflowed and
                                  turned the road into a muddy lake. The lower part of the shamba had also been flooded
                                  and the water receded leaving branches and driftwood amongst the coffee. This was my
                                  first experience of a real tropical storm. I am afraid that after the battering the coffee has
                                  had there is little hope of a decent crop next year.

                                  Anyway Christmas is coming so we don’t dwell on these mishaps. The children
                                  have already chosen their tree from amongst the young cypresses in the vegetable
                                  garden. We all send our love and hope that you too will have a Happy Christmas.

                                  Eleanor

                                  Mchewe Estate. 22nd December 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I’ve been in the wars with my staff. The cook has been away ill for ten days but is
                                  back today though shaky and full of self pity. The houseboy, who really has been a brick
                                  during the cooks absence has now taken to his bed and I feel like taking to Mine! The
                                  children however have the Christmas spirit and are making weird and wonderful paper
                                  decorations. George’s contribution was to have the house whitewashed throughout and
                                  it looks beautifully fresh.

                                  My best bit of news is that my old ayah Janey has been to see me and would
                                  like to start working here again on Jan 1st. We are all very well. We meant to give
                                  ourselves an outing to Mbeya as a Christmas treat but here there is an outbreak of
                                  enteric fever there so will now not go. We have had two visitors from the Diggings this
                                  week. The children see so few strangers that they were fascinated and hung around
                                  staring. Ann sat down on the arm of the couch beside one and studied his profile.
                                  Suddenly she announced in her clear voice, “Mummy do you know, this man has got
                                  wax in his ears!” Very awkward pause in the conversation. By the way when I was
                                  cleaning out little Kate’s ears with a swab of cotton wool a few days ago, Ann asked
                                  “Mummy, do bees have wax in their ears? Well, where do you get beeswax from
                                  then?”

                                  I meant to keep your Christmas parcel unopened until Christmas Eve but could
                                  not resist peeping today. What lovely things! Ann so loves pretties and will be
                                  delighted with her frocks. My dress is just right and I love Georgie’s manly little flannel
                                  shorts and blue shirt. We have bought them each a watering can. I suppose I shall
                                  regret this later. One of your most welcome gifts is the album of nursery rhyme records. I
                                  am so fed up with those that we have. Both children love singing. I put a record on the
                                  gramophone geared to slow and off they go . Georgie sings more slowly than Ann but
                                  much more tunefully. Ann sings in a flat monotone but Georgie with great expression.
                                  You ought to hear him render ‘Sing a song of sixpence’. He cannot pronounce an R or
                                  an S. Mother has sent a large home made Christmas pudding and a fine Christmas
                                  cake and George will shoot some partridges for Christmas dinner.
                                  Think of us as I shall certainly think of you.

                                  Your very loving,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 2nd January 1936

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Christmas was fun! The tree looked very gay with its load of tinsel, candles and
                                  red crackers and the coloured balloons you sent. All the children got plenty of toys
                                  thanks to Grandparents and Aunts. George made Ann a large doll’s bed and I made
                                  some elegant bedding, Barbara, the big doll is now permanently bed ridden. Her poor
                                  shattered head has come all unstuck and though I have pieced it together again it is a sad
                                  sight. If you have not yet chosen a present for her birthday next month would you
                                  please get a new head from the Handy House. I enclose measurements. Ann does so
                                  love the doll. She always calls her, “My little girl”, and she keeps the doll’s bed beside
                                  her own and never fails to kiss her goodnight.

                                  We had no guests for Christmas this year but we were quite festive. Ann
                                  decorated the dinner table with small pink roses and forget-me-knots and tinsel and the
                                  crackers from the tree. It was a wet day but we played the new records and both
                                  George and I worked hard to make it a really happy day for the children. The children
                                  were hugely delighted when George made himself a revolting set of false teeth out of
                                  plasticine and a moustache and beard of paper straw from a chocolate box. “Oh Daddy
                                  you look exactly like Father Christmas!” cried an enthralled Ann. Before bedtime we lit
                                  all the candles on the tree and sang ‘Away in a Manger’, and then we opened the box of
                                  starlights you sent and Ann and Georgie had their first experience of fireworks.
                                  After the children went to bed things deteriorated. First George went for his bath
                                  and found and killed a large black snake in the bathroom. It must have been in the
                                  bathroom when I bathed the children earlier in the evening. Then I developed bad
                                  toothache which kept me awake all night and was agonising next day. Unfortunately the
                                  bridge between the farm and Mbeya had been washed away and the water was too
                                  deep for the car to ford until the 30th when at last I was able to take my poor swollen
                                  face to Mbeya. There is now a young German woman dentist working at the hospital.
                                  She pulled out the offending molar which had a large abscess attached to it.
                                  Whilst the dentist attended to me, Ann and Georgie played happily with the
                                  doctor’s children. I wish they could play more often with other children. Dr Eckhardt was
                                  very pleased with Margery Kate who at seven months weighs 17 lbs and has lovely
                                  rosy cheeks. He admired Ann and told her that she looked just like a German girl. “No I
                                  don’t”, cried Ann indignantly, “I’m English!”

                                  We were caught in a rain storm going home and as the old car still has no
                                  windscreen or side curtains we all got soaked except for the baby who was snugly
                                  wrapped in my raincoat. The kids thought it great fun. Ann is growing up fast now. She
                                  likes to ‘help mummy’. She is a perfectionist at four years old which is rather trying. She
                                  gets so discouraged when things do not turn out as well as she means them to. Sewing
                                  is constantly being unpicked and paintings torn up. She is a very sensitive child.
                                  Georgie is quite different. He is a man of action, but not silent. He talks incessantly
                                  but lisps and stumbles over some words. At one time Ann and Georgie often
                                  conversed in Ki-Swahili but they now scorn to do so. If either forgets and uses a Swahili
                                  word, the other points a scornful finger and shouts “You black toto”.

                                  With love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  #6261
                                  TracyTracy
                                  Participant

                                    From Tanganyika with Love

                                    continued

                                    With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 11th July 1931.

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    You say that you would like to know more about our neighbours. Well there is
                                    not much to tell. Kath Wood is very good about coming over to see me. I admire her
                                    very much because she is so capable as well as being attractive. She speaks very
                                    fluent Ki-Swahili and I envy her the way she can carry on a long conversation with the
                                    natives. I am very slow in learning the language possibly because Lamek and the
                                    houseboy both speak basic English.

                                    I have very little to do with the Africans apart from the house servants, but I do
                                    run a sort of clinic for the wives and children of our employees. The children suffer chiefly
                                    from sore eyes and worms, and the older ones often have bad ulcers on their legs. All
                                    farmers keep a stock of drugs and bandages.

                                    George also does a bit of surgery and last month sewed up the sole of the foot
                                    of a boy who had trodden on the blade of a panga, a sort of sword the Africans use for
                                    hacking down bush. He made an excellent job of it. George tells me that the Africans
                                    have wonderful powers of recuperation. Once in his bachelor days, one of his men was
                                    disembowelled by an elephant. George washed his “guts” in a weak solution of
                                    pot.permang, put them back in the cavity and sewed up the torn flesh and he
                                    recovered.

                                    But to get back to the neighbours. We see less of Hicky Wood than of Kath.
                                    Hicky can be charming but is often moody as I believe Irishmen often are.
                                    Major Jones is now at home on his shamba, which he leaves from time to time
                                    for temporary jobs on the district roads. He walks across fairly regularly and we are
                                    always glad to see him for he is a great bearer of news. In this part of Africa there is no
                                    knocking or ringing of doorbells. Front doors are always left open and visitors always
                                    welcome. When a visitor approaches a house he shouts “Hodi”, and the owner of the
                                    house yells “Karibu”, which I believe means “Come near” or approach, and tea is
                                    produced in a matter of minutes no matter what hour of the day it is.
                                    The road that passes all our farms is the only road to the Gold Diggings and
                                    diggers often drop in on the Woods and Major Jones and bring news of the Goldfields.
                                    This news is sometimes about gold but quite often about whose wife is living with
                                    whom. This is a great country for gossip.

                                    Major Jones now has his brother Llewyllen living with him. I drove across with
                                    George to be introduced to him. Llewyllen’s health is poor and he looks much older than
                                    his years and very like the portrait of Trader Horn. He has the same emaciated features,
                                    burning eyes and long beard. He is proud of his Welsh tenor voice and often bursts into
                                    song.

                                    Both brothers are excellent conversationalists and George enjoys walking over
                                    sometimes on a Sunday for a bit of masculine company. The other day when George
                                    walked across to visit the Joneses, he found both brothers in the shamba and Llew in a
                                    great rage. They had been stooping to inspect a water furrow when Llew backed into a
                                    hornets nest. One furious hornet stung him on the seat and another on the back of his
                                    neck. Llew leapt forward and somehow his false teeth shot out into the furrow and were
                                    carried along by the water. When George arrived Llew had retrieved his teeth but
                                    George swears that, in the commotion, the heavy leather leggings, which Llew always
                                    wears, had swivelled around on his thin legs and were calves to the front.
                                    George has heard that Major Jones is to sell pert of his land to his Swedish brother-in-law, Max Coster, so we will soon have another couple in the neighbourhood.

                                    I’ve had a bit of a pantomime here on the farm. On the day we went to Tukuyu,
                                    all our washing was stolen from the clothes line and also our new charcoal iron. George
                                    reported the matter to the police and they sent out a plain clothes policeman. He wears
                                    the long white Arab gown called a Kanzu much in vogue here amongst the African elite
                                    but, alas for secrecy, huge black police boots protrude from beneath the Kanzu and, to
                                    add to this revealing clue, the askari springs to attention and salutes each time I pass by.
                                    Not much hope of finding out the identity of the thief I fear.

                                    George’s furrow was entirely successful and we now have water running behind
                                    the kitchen. Our drinking water we get from a lovely little spring on the farm. We boil and
                                    filter it for safety’s sake. I don’t think that is necessary. The furrow water is used for
                                    washing pots and pans and for bath water.

                                    Lots of love,
                                    Eleanor

                                    Mchewe Estate. 8th. August 1931

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    I think it is about time I told you that we are going to have a baby. We are both
                                    thrilled about it. I have not seen a Doctor but feel very well and you are not to worry. I
                                    looked it up in my handbook for wives and reckon that the baby is due about February
                                    8th. next year.

                                    The announcement came from George, not me! I had been feeling queasy for
                                    days and was waiting for the right moment to tell George. You know. Soft lights and
                                    music etc. However when I was listlessly poking my food around one lunch time
                                    George enquired calmly, “When are you going to tell me about the baby?” Not at all
                                    according to the book! The problem is where to have the baby. February is a very wet
                                    month and the nearest Doctor is over 50 miles away at Tukuyu. I cannot go to stay at
                                    Tukuyu because there is no European accommodation at the hospital, no hotel and no
                                    friend with whom I could stay.

                                    George thinks I should go South to you but Capetown is so very far away and I
                                    love my little home here. Also George says he could not come all the way down with
                                    me as he simply must stay here and get the farm on its feet. He would drive me as far
                                    as the railway in Northern Rhodesia. It is a difficult decision to take. Write and tell me what
                                    you think.

                                    The days tick by quietly here. The servants are very willing but have to be
                                    supervised and even then a crisis can occur. Last Saturday I was feeling squeamish and
                                    decided not to have lunch. I lay reading on the couch whilst George sat down to a
                                    solitary curry lunch. Suddenly he gave an exclamation and pushed back his chair. I
                                    jumped up to see what was wrong and there, on his plate, gleaming in the curry gravy
                                    were small bits of broken glass. I hurried to the kitchen to confront Lamek with the plate.
                                    He explained that he had dropped the new and expensive bottle of curry powder on
                                    the brick floor of the kitchen. He did not tell me as he thought I would make a “shauri” so
                                    he simply scooped up the curry powder, removed the larger pieces of glass and used
                                    part of the powder for seasoning the lunch.

                                    The weather is getting warmer now. It was very cold in June and July and we had
                                    fires in the daytime as well as at night. Now that much of the land has been cleared we
                                    are able to go for pleasant walks in the weekends. My favourite spot is a waterfall on the
                                    Mchewe River just on the boundary of our land. There is a delightful little pool below the
                                    waterfall and one day George intends to stock it with trout.

                                    Now that there are more Europeans around to buy meat the natives find it worth
                                    their while to kill an occasional beast. Every now and again a native arrives with a large
                                    bowl of freshly killed beef for sale. One has no way of knowing whether the animal was
                                    healthy and the meat is often still warm and very bloody. I hated handling it at first but am
                                    becoming accustomed to it now and have even started a brine tub. There is no other
                                    way of keeping meat here and it can only be kept in its raw state for a few hours before
                                    going bad. One of the delicacies is the hump which all African cattle have. When corned
                                    it is like the best brisket.

                                    See what a housewife I am becoming.
                                    With much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. Sept.6th. 1931

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    I have grown to love the life here and am sad to think I shall be leaving
                                    Tanganyika soon for several months. Yes I am coming down to have the baby in the
                                    bosom of the family. George thinks it best and so does the doctor. I didn’t mention it
                                    before but I have never recovered fully from the effects of that bad bout of malaria and
                                    so I have been persuaded to leave George and our home and go to the Cape, in the
                                    hope that I shall come back here as fit as when I first arrived in the country plus a really
                                    healthy and bouncing baby. I am torn two ways, I long to see you all – but how I would
                                    love to stay on here.

                                    George will drive me down to Northern Rhodesia in early October to catch a
                                    South bound train. I’ll telegraph the date of departure when I know it myself. The road is
                                    very, very bad and the car has been giving a good deal of trouble so, though the baby
                                    is not due until early February, George thinks it best to get the journey over soon as
                                    possible, for the rains break in November and the the roads will then be impassable. It
                                    may take us five or six days to reach Broken Hill as we will take it slowly. I am looking
                                    forward to the drive through new country and to camping out at night.
                                    Our days pass quietly by. George is out on the shamba most of the day. He
                                    goes out before breakfast on weekdays and spends most of the day working with the
                                    men – not only supervising but actually working with his hands and beating the labourers
                                    at their own jobs. He comes to the house for meals and tea breaks. I potter around the
                                    house and garden, sew, mend and read. Lamek continues to be a treasure. he turns out
                                    some surprising dishes. One of his specialities is stuffed chicken. He carefully skins the
                                    chicken removing all bones. He then minces all the chicken meat and adds minced onion
                                    and potatoes. He then stuffs the chicken skin with the minced meat and carefully sews it
                                    together again. The resulting dish is very filling because the boned chicken is twice the
                                    size of a normal one. It lies on its back as round as a football with bloated legs in the air.
                                    Rather repulsive to look at but Lamek is most proud of his accomplishment.
                                    The other day he produced another of his masterpieces – a cooked tortoise. It
                                    was served on a dish covered with parsley and crouched there sans shell but, only too
                                    obviously, a tortoise. I took one look and fled with heaving diaphragm, but George said
                                    it tasted quite good. He tells me that he has had queerer dishes produced by former
                                    cooks. He says that once in his hunting days his cook served up a skinned baby
                                    monkey with its hands folded on its breast. He says it would take a cannibal to eat that
                                    dish.

                                    And now for something sad. Poor old Llew died quite suddenly and it was a sad
                                    shock to this tiny community. We went across to the funeral and it was a very simple and
                                    dignified affair. Llew was buried on Joni’s farm in a grave dug by the farm boys. The
                                    body was wrapped in a blanket and bound to some boards and lowered into the
                                    ground. There was no service. The men just said “Good-bye Llew.” and “Sleep well
                                    Llew”, and things like that. Then Joni and his brother-in-law Max, and George shovelled
                                    soil over the body after which the grave was filled in by Joni’s shamba boys. It was a
                                    lovely bright afternoon and I thought how simple and sensible a funeral it was.
                                    I hope you will be glad to have me home. I bet Dad will be holding thumbs that
                                    the baby will be a girl.

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Note
                                    “There are no letters to my family during the period of Sept. 1931 to June 1932
                                    because during these months I was living with my parents and sister in a suburb of
                                    Cape Town. I had hoped to return to Tanganyika by air with my baby soon after her
                                    birth in Feb.1932 but the doctor would not permit this.

                                    A month before my baby was born, a company called Imperial Airways, had
                                    started the first passenger service between South Africa and England. One of the night
                                    stops was at Mbeya near my husband’s coffee farm, and it was my intention to take the
                                    train to Broken Hill in Northern Rhodesia and to fly from there to Mbeya with my month
                                    old baby. In those days however, commercial flying was still a novelty and the doctor
                                    was not sure that flying at a high altitude might not have an adverse effect upon a young
                                    baby.

                                    He strongly advised me to wait until the baby was four months old and I did this
                                    though the long wait was very trying to my husband alone on our farm in Tanganyika,
                                    and to me, cherished though I was in my old home.

                                    My story, covering those nine long months is soon told. My husband drove me
                                    down from Mbeya to Broken Hill in NorthernRhodesia. The journey was tedious as the
                                    weather was very hot and dry and the road sandy and rutted, very different from the
                                    Great North road as it is today. The wooden wheel spokes of the car became so dry
                                    that they rattled and George had to bind wet rags around them. We had several
                                    punctures and with one thing and another I was lucky to catch the train.
                                    My parents were at Cape Town station to welcome me and I stayed
                                    comfortably with them, living very quietly, until my baby was born. She arrived exactly
                                    on the appointed day, Feb.8th.

                                    I wrote to my husband “Our Charmian Ann is a darling baby. She is very fair and
                                    rather pale and has the most exquisite hands, with long tapering fingers. Daddy
                                    absolutely dotes on her and so would you, if you were here. I can’t bear to think that you
                                    are so terribly far away. Although Ann was born exactly on the day, I was taken quite by
                                    surprise. It was awfully hot on the night before, and before going to bed I had a fancy for
                                    some water melon. The result was that when I woke in the early morning with labour
                                    pains and vomiting I thought it was just an attack of indigestion due to eating too much
                                    melon. The result was that I did not wake Marjorie until the pains were pretty frequent.
                                    She called our next door neighbour who, in his pyjamas, drove me to the nursing home
                                    at breakneck speed. The Matron was very peeved that I had left things so late but all
                                    went well and by nine o’clock, Mother, positively twittering with delight, was allowed to
                                    see me and her first granddaughter . She told me that poor Dad was in such a state of
                                    nerves that he was sick amongst the grapevines. He says that he could not bear to go
                                    through such an anxious time again, — so we will have to have our next eleven in
                                    Tanganyika!”

                                    The next four months passed rapidly as my time was taken up by the demands
                                    of my new baby. Dr. Trudy King’s method of rearing babies was then the vogue and I
                                    stuck fanatically to all the rules he laid down, to the intense exasperation of my parents
                                    who longed to cuddle the child.

                                    As the time of departure drew near my parents became more and more reluctant
                                    to allow me to face the journey alone with their adored grandchild, so my brother,
                                    Graham, very generously offered to escort us on the train to Broken Hill where he could
                                    put us on the plane for Mbeya.

                                    Eleanor Rushby

                                     

                                    Mchewe Estate. June 15th 1932

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    You’ll be glad to know that we arrived quite safe and sound and very, very
                                    happy to be home.The train Journey was uneventful. Ann slept nearly all the way.
                                    Graham was very kind and saw to everything. He even sat with the baby whilst I went
                                    to meals in the dining car.

                                    We were met at Broken Hill by the Thoms who had arranged accommodation for
                                    us at the hotel for the night. They also drove us to the aerodrome in the morning where
                                    the Airways agent told us that Ann is the first baby to travel by air on this section of the
                                    Cape to England route. The plane trip was very bumpy indeed especially between
                                    Broken Hill and Mpika. Everyone was ill including poor little Ann who sicked up her milk
                                    all over the front of my new coat. I arrived at Mbeya looking a sorry caricature of Radiant
                                    Motherhood. I must have been pale green and the baby was snow white. Under the
                                    circumstances it was a good thing that George did not meet us. We were met instead
                                    by Ken Menzies, the owner of the Mbeya Hotel where we spent the night. Ken was
                                    most fatherly and kind and a good nights rest restored Ann and me to our usual robust
                                    health.

                                    Mbeya has greatly changed. The hotel is now finished and can accommodate
                                    fifty guests. It consists of a large main building housing a large bar and dining room and
                                    offices and a number of small cottage bedrooms. It even has electric light. There are
                                    several buildings out at the aerodrome and private houses going up in Mbeya.
                                    After breakfast Ken Menzies drove us out to the farm where we had a warm
                                    welcome from George, who looks well but rather thin. The house was spotless and the
                                    new cook, Abel, had made light scones for tea. George had prepared all sorts of lovely
                                    surprises. There is a new reed ceiling in the living room and a new dresser gay with
                                    willow pattern plates which he had ordered from England. There is also a writing table
                                    and a square table by the door for visitors hats. More personal is a lovely model ship
                                    which George assembled from one of those Hobbie’s kits. It puts the finishing touch to
                                    the rather old world air of our living room.

                                    In the bedroom there is a large double bed which George made himself. It has
                                    strips of old car tyres nailed to a frame which makes a fine springy mattress and on top
                                    of this is a thick mattress of kapok.In the kitchen there is a good wood stove which
                                    George salvaged from a Mission dump. It looks a bit battered but works very well. The
                                    new cook is excellent. The only blight is that he will wear rubber soled tennis shoes and
                                    they smell awful. I daren’t hurt his feelings by pointing this out though. Opposite the
                                    kitchen is a new laundry building containing a forty gallon hot water drum and a sink for
                                    washing up. Lovely!

                                    George has been working very hard. He now has forty acres of coffee seedlings
                                    planted out and has also found time to plant a rose garden and fruit trees. There are
                                    orange and peach trees, tree tomatoes, paw paws, guavas and berries. He absolutely
                                    adores Ann who has been very good and does not seem at all unsettled by the long
                                    journey.

                                    It is absolutely heavenly to be back and I shall be happier than ever now that I
                                    have a baby to play with during the long hours when George is busy on the farm,
                                    Thank you for all your love and care during the many months I was with you. Ann
                                    sends a special bubble for granddad.

                                    Your very loving,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate Mbeya July 18th 1932

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Ann at five months is enchanting. She is a very good baby, smiles readily and is
                                    gaining weight steadily. She doesn’t sleep much during the day but that does not
                                    matter, because, apart from washing her little things, I have nothing to do but attend to
                                    her. She sleeps very well at night which is a blessing as George has to get up very
                                    early to start work on the shamba and needs a good nights rest.
                                    My nights are not so good, because we are having a plague of rats which frisk
                                    around in the bedroom at night. Great big ones that come up out of the long grass in the
                                    gorge beside the house and make cosy homes on our reed ceiling and in the thatch of
                                    the roof.

                                    We always have a night light burning so that, if necessary, I can attend to Ann
                                    with a minimum of fuss, and the things I see in that dim light! There are gaps between
                                    the reeds and one night I heard, plop! and there, before my horrified gaze, lay a newly
                                    born hairless baby rat on the floor by the bed, plop, plop! and there lay two more.
                                    Quite dead, poor things – but what a careless mother.

                                    I have also seen rats scampering around on the tops of the mosquito nets and
                                    sometimes we have them on our bed. They have a lovely game. They swarm down
                                    the cord from which the mosquito net is suspended, leap onto the bed and onto the
                                    floor. We do not have our net down now the cold season is here and there are few
                                    mosquitoes.

                                    Last week a rat crept under Ann’s net which hung to the floor and bit her little
                                    finger, so now I tuck the net in under the mattress though it makes it difficult for me to
                                    attend to her at night. We shall have to get a cat somewhere. Ann’s pram has not yet
                                    arrived so George carries her when we go walking – to her great content.
                                    The native women around here are most interested in Ann. They come to see
                                    her, bearing small gifts, and usually bring a child or two with them. They admire my child
                                    and I admire theirs and there is an exchange of gifts. They produce a couple of eggs or
                                    a few bananas or perhaps a skinny fowl and I hand over sugar, salt or soap as they
                                    value these commodities. The most lavish gift went to the wife of Thomas our headman,
                                    who produced twin daughters in the same week as I had Ann.

                                    Our neighbours have all been across to welcome me back and to admire the
                                    baby. These include Marion Coster who came out to join her husband whilst I was in
                                    South Africa. The two Hickson-Wood children came over on a fat old white donkey.
                                    They made a pretty picture sitting astride, one behind the other – Maureen with her arms
                                    around small Michael’s waist. A native toto led the donkey and the children’ s ayah
                                    walked beside it.

                                    It is quite cold here now but the sun is bright and the air dry. The whole
                                    countryside is beautifully green and we are a very happy little family.

                                    Lots and lots of love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate August 11th 1932

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    George has been very unwell for the past week. He had a nasty gash on his
                                    knee which went septic. He had a swelling in the groin and a high temperature and could
                                    not sleep at night for the pain in his leg. Ann was very wakeful too during the same
                                    period, I think she is teething. I luckily have kept fit though rather harassed. Yesterday the
                                    leg looked so inflamed that George decided to open up the wound himself. he made
                                    quite a big cut in exactly the right place. You should have seen the blackish puss
                                    pouring out.

                                    After he had thoroughly cleaned the wound George sewed it up himself. he has
                                    the proper surgical needles and gut. He held the cut together with his left hand and
                                    pushed the needle through the flesh with his right. I pulled the needle out and passed it
                                    to George for the next stitch. I doubt whether a surgeon could have made a neater job
                                    of it. He is still confined to the couch but today his temperature is normal. Some
                                    husband!

                                    The previous week was hectic in another way. We had a visit from lions! George
                                    and I were having supper about 8.30 on Tuesday night when the back verandah was
                                    suddenly invaded by women and children from the servants quarters behind the kitchen.
                                    They were all yelling “Simba, Simba.” – simba means lions. The door opened suddenly
                                    and the houseboy rushed in to say that there were lions at the huts. George got up
                                    swiftly, fetched gun and ammunition from the bedroom and with the houseboy carrying
                                    the lamp, went off to investigate. I remained at the table, carrying on with my supper as I
                                    felt a pioneer’s wife should! Suddenly something big leapt through the open window
                                    behind me. You can imagine what I thought! I know now that it is quite true to say one’s
                                    hair rises when one is scared. However it was only Kelly, our huge Irish wolfhound,
                                    taking cover.

                                    George returned quite soon to say that apparently the commotion made by the
                                    women and children had frightened the lions off. He found their tracks in the soft earth
                                    round the huts and a bag of maize that had been playfully torn open but the lions had
                                    moved on.

                                    Next day we heard that they had moved to Hickson-Wood’s shamba. Hicky
                                    came across to say that the lions had jumped over the wall of his cattle boma and killed
                                    both his white Muskat riding donkeys.
                                    He and a friend sat up all next night over the remains but the lions did not return to
                                    the kill.

                                    Apart from the little set back last week, Ann is blooming. She has a cap of very
                                    fine fair hair and clear blue eyes under straight brow. She also has lovely dimples in both
                                    cheeks. We are very proud of her.

                                    Our neighbours are picking coffee but the crops are small and the price is low. I
                                    am amazed that they are so optimistic about the future. No one in these parts ever
                                    seems to grouse though all are living on capital. They all say “Well if the worst happens
                                    we can always go up to the Lupa Diggings.”

                                    Don’t worry about us, we have enough to tide us over for some time yet.

                                    Much love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 28th Sept. 1932

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    News! News! I’m going to have another baby. George and I are delighted and I
                                    hope it will be a boy this time. I shall be able to have him at Mbeya because things are
                                    rapidly changing here. Several German families have moved to Mbeya including a
                                    German doctor who means to build a hospital there. I expect he will make a very good
                                    living because there must now be some hundreds of Europeans within a hundred miles
                                    radius of Mbeya. The Europeans are mostly British or German but there are also
                                    Greeks and, I believe, several other nationalities are represented on the Lupa Diggings.
                                    Ann is blooming and developing according to the Book except that she has no
                                    teeth yet! Kath Hickson-Wood has given her a very nice high chair and now she has
                                    breakfast and lunch at the table with us. Everything within reach goes on the floor to her
                                    amusement and my exasperation!

                                    You ask whether we have any Church of England missionaries in our part. No we
                                    haven’t though there are Lutheran and Roman Catholic Missions. I have never even
                                    heard of a visiting Church of England Clergyman to these parts though there are babies
                                    in plenty who have not been baptised. Jolly good thing I had Ann Christened down
                                    there.

                                    The R.C. priests in this area are called White Fathers. They all have beards and
                                    wear white cassocks and sun helmets. One, called Father Keiling, calls around frequently.
                                    Though none of us in this area is Catholic we take it in turn to put him up for the night. The
                                    Catholic Fathers in their turn are most hospitable to travellers regardless of their beliefs.
                                    Rather a sad thing has happened. Lucas our old chicken-boy is dead. I shall miss
                                    his toothy smile. George went to the funeral and fired two farewell shots from his rifle
                                    over the grave – a gesture much appreciated by the locals. Lucas in his day was a good
                                    hunter.

                                    Several of the locals own muzzle loading guns but the majority hunt with dogs
                                    and spears. The dogs wear bells which make an attractive jingle but I cannot bear the
                                    idea of small antelope being run down until they are exhausted before being clubbed of
                                    stabbed to death. We seldom eat venison as George does not care to shoot buck.
                                    Recently though, he shot an eland and Abel rendered down the fat which is excellent for
                                    cooking and very like beef fat.

                                    Much love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. P.O.Mbeya 21st November 1932

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    George has gone off to the Lupa for a week with John Molteno. John came up
                                    here with the idea of buying a coffee farm but he has changed his mind and now thinks of
                                    staking some claims on the diggings and also setting up as a gold buyer.

                                    Did I tell you about his arrival here? John and George did some elephant hunting
                                    together in French Equatorial Africa and when John heard that George had married and
                                    settled in Tanganyika, he also decided to come up here. He drove up from Cape Town
                                    in a Baby Austin and arrived just as our labourers were going home for the day. The little
                                    car stopped half way up our hill and John got out to investigate. You should have heard
                                    the astonished exclamations when John got out – all 6 ft 5 ins. of him! He towered over
                                    the little car and even to me it seemed impossible for him to have made the long
                                    journey in so tiny a car.

                                    Kath Wood has been over several times lately. She is slim and looks so right in
                                    the shirt and corduroy slacks she almost always wears. She was here yesterday when
                                    the shamba boy, digging in the front garden, unearthed a large earthenware cooking pot,
                                    sealed at the top. I was greatly excited and had an instant mental image of fabulous
                                    wealth. We made the boy bring the pot carefully on to the verandah and opened it in
                                    happy anticipation. What do you think was inside? Nothing but a grinning skull! Such a
                                    treat for a pregnant female.

                                    We have a tree growing here that had lovely straight branches covered by a
                                    smooth bark. I got the garden boy to cut several of these branches of a uniform size,
                                    peeled off the bark and have made Ann a playpen with the poles which are much like
                                    broom sticks. Now I can leave her unattended when I do my chores. The other morning
                                    after breakfast I put Ann in her playpen on the verandah and gave her a piece of toast
                                    and honey to keep her quiet whilst I laundered a few of her things. When I looked out a
                                    little later I was horrified to see a number of bees buzzing around her head whilst she
                                    placidly concentrated on her toast. I made a rapid foray and rescued her but I still don’t
                                    know whether that was the thing to do.

                                    We all send our love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mbeya Hospital. April 25th. 1933

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Here I am, installed at the very new hospital, built by Dr Eckhardt, awaiting the
                                    arrival of the new baby. George has gone back to the farm on foot but will walk in again
                                    to spend the weekend with us. Ann is with me and enjoys the novelty of playing with
                                    other children. The Eckhardts have two, a pretty little girl of two and a half and a very fair
                                    roly poly boy of Ann’s age. Ann at fourteen months is very active. She is quite a little girl
                                    now with lovely dimples. She walks well but is backward in teething.

                                    George, Ann and I had a couple of days together at the hotel before I moved in
                                    here and several of the local women visited me and have promised to visit me in
                                    hospital. The trip from farm to town was very entertaining if not very comfortable. There
                                    is ten miles of very rough road between our farm and Utengule Mission and beyond the
                                    Mission there is a fair thirteen or fourteen mile road to Mbeya.

                                    As we have no car now the doctor’s wife offered to drive us from the Mission to
                                    Mbeya but she would not risk her car on the road between the Mission and our farm.
                                    The upshot was that I rode in the Hickson-Woods machila for that ten mile stretch. The
                                    machila is a canopied hammock, slung from a bamboo pole, in which I reclined, not too
                                    comfortably in my unwieldy state, with Ann beside me or sometime straddling me. Four
                                    of our farm boys carried the machila on their shoulders, two fore and two aft. The relief
                                    bearers walked on either side. There must have been a dozen in all and they sang a sort
                                    of sea shanty song as they walked. One man would sing a verse and the others took up
                                    the chorus. They often improvise as they go. They moaned about my weight (at least
                                    George said so! I don’t follow Ki-Swahili well yet) and expressed the hope that I would
                                    have a son and that George would reward them handsomely.

                                    George and Kelly, the dog, followed close behind the machila and behind
                                    George came Abel our cook and his wife and small daughter Annalie, all in their best
                                    attire. The cook wore a palm beach suit, large Terai hat and sunglasses and two colour
                                    shoes and quite lent a tone to the proceedings! Right at the back came the rag tag and
                                    bobtail who joined the procession just for fun.

                                    Mrs Eckhardt was already awaiting us at the Mission when we arrived and we had
                                    an uneventful trip to the Mbeya Hotel.

                                    During my last week at the farm I felt very tired and engaged the cook’s small
                                    daughter, Annalie, to amuse Ann for an hour after lunch so that I could have a rest. They
                                    played in the small verandah room which adjoins our bedroom and where I keep all my
                                    sewing materials. One afternoon I was startled by a scream from Ann. I rushed to the
                                    room and found Ann with blood steaming from her cheek. Annalie knelt beside her,
                                    looking startled and frightened, with my embroidery scissors in her hand. She had cut off
                                    half of the long curling golden lashes on one of Ann’s eyelids and, in trying to finish the
                                    job, had cut off a triangular flap of skin off Ann’s cheek bone.

                                    I called Abel, the cook, and demanded that he should chastise his daughter there and
                                    then and I soon heard loud shrieks from behind the kitchen. He spanked her with a
                                    bamboo switch but I am sure not as well as she deserved. Africans are very tolerant
                                    towards their children though I have seen husbands and wives fighting furiously.
                                    I feel very well but long to have the confinement over.

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mbeya Hospital. 2nd May 1933.

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Little George arrived at 7.30 pm on Saturday evening 29 th. April. George was
                                    with me at the time as he had walked in from the farm for news, and what a wonderful bit
                                    of luck that was. The doctor was away on a case on the Diggings and I was bathing Ann
                                    with George looking on, when the pains started. George dried Ann and gave her
                                    supper and put her to bed. Afterwards he sat on the steps outside my room and a
                                    great comfort it was to know that he was there.

                                    The confinement was short but pretty hectic. The Doctor returned to the Hospital
                                    just in time to deliver the baby. He is a grand little boy, beautifully proportioned. The
                                    doctor says he has never seen a better formed baby. He is however rather funny
                                    looking just now as his head is, very temporarily, egg shaped. He has a shock of black
                                    silky hair like a gollywog and believe it or not, he has a slight black moustache.
                                    George came in, looked at the baby, looked at me, and we both burst out
                                    laughing. The doctor was shocked and said so. He has no sense of humour and couldn’t
                                    understand that we, though bursting with pride in our son, could never the less laugh at
                                    him.

                                    Friends in Mbeya have sent me the most gorgeous flowers and my room is
                                    transformed with delphiniums, roses and carnations. The room would be very austere
                                    without the flowers. Curtains, bedspread and enamelware, walls and ceiling are all
                                    snowy white.

                                    George hired a car and took Ann home next day. I have little George for
                                    company during the day but he is removed at night. I am longing to get him home and
                                    away from the German nurse who feeds him on black tea when he cries. She insists that
                                    tea is a medicine and good for him.

                                    Much love from a proud mother of two.
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate 12May 1933

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    We are all together at home again and how lovely it feels. Even the house
                                    servants seem pleased. The boy had decorated the lounge with sprays of
                                    bougainvillaea and Abel had backed one of his good sponge cakes.

                                    Ann looked fat and rosy but at first was only moderately interested in me and the
                                    new baby but she soon thawed. George is good with her and will continue to dress Ann
                                    in the mornings and put her to bed until I am satisfied with Georgie.

                                    He, poor mite, has a nasty rash on face and neck. I am sure it is just due to that
                                    tea the nurse used to give him at night. He has lost his moustache and is fast loosing his
                                    wild black hair and emerging as quite a handsome babe. He is a very masculine looking
                                    infant with much more strongly marked eyebrows and a larger nose that Ann had. He is
                                    very good and lies quietly in his basket even when awake.

                                    George has been making a hatching box for brown trout ova and has set it up in
                                    a small clear stream fed by a spring in readiness for the ova which is expected from
                                    South Africa by next weeks plane. Some keen fishermen from Mbeya and the District
                                    have clubbed together to buy the ova. The fingerlings are later to be transferred to
                                    streams in Mbeya and Tukuyu Districts.

                                    I shall now have my hands full with the two babies and will not have much time for the
                                    garden, or I fear, for writing very long letters. Remember though, that no matter how
                                    large my family becomes, I shall always love you as much as ever.

                                    Your affectionate,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 14th June 1933

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    The four of us are all well but alas we have lost our dear Kelly. He was rather a
                                    silly dog really, although he grew so big he retained all his puppy ways but we were all
                                    very fond of him, especially George because Kelly attached himself to George whilst I
                                    was away having Ann and from that time on he was George’s shadow. I think he had
                                    some form of biliary fever. He died stretched out on the living room couch late last night,
                                    with George sitting beside him so that he would not feel alone.

                                    The children are growing fast. Georgie is a darling. He now has a fluff of pale
                                    brown hair and his eyes are large and dark brown. Ann is very plump and fair.
                                    We have had several visitors lately. Apart from neighbours, a car load of diggers
                                    arrived one night and John Molteno and his bride were here. She is a very attractive girl
                                    but, I should say, more suited to life in civilisation than in this back of beyond. She has
                                    gone out to the diggings with her husband and will have to walk a good stretch of the fifty
                                    or so miles.

                                    The diggers had to sleep in the living room on the couch and on hastily erected
                                    camp beds. They arrived late at night and left after breakfast next day. One had half a
                                    beard, the other side of his face had been forcibly shaved in the bar the night before.

                                    your affectionate,
                                    Eleanor

                                    Mchewe Estate. August 10 th. 1933

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    George is away on safari with two Indian Army officers. The money he will get for
                                    his services will be very welcome because this coffee growing is a slow business, and
                                    our capitol is rapidly melting away. The job of acting as White Hunter was unexpected
                                    or George would not have taken on the job of hatching the ova which duly arrived from
                                    South Africa.

                                    George and the District Commissioner, David Pollock, went to meet the plane
                                    by which the ova had been consigned but the pilot knew nothing about the package. It
                                    came to light in the mail bag with the parcels! However the ova came to no harm. David
                                    Pollock and George brought the parcel to the farm and carefully transferred the ova to
                                    the hatching box. It was interesting to watch the tiny fry hatch out – a process which took
                                    several days. Many died in the process and George removed the dead by sucking
                                    them up in a glass tube.

                                    When hatched, the tiny fry were fed on ant eggs collected by the boys. I had to
                                    take over the job of feeding and removing the dead when George left on safari. The fry
                                    have to be fed every four hours, like the baby, so each time I have fed Georgie. I hurry
                                    down to feed the trout.

                                    The children are very good but keep me busy. Ann can now say several words
                                    and understands more. She adores Georgie. I long to show them off to you.

                                    Very much love
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. October 27th 1933

                                    Dear Family,

                                    All just over flu. George and Ann were very poorly. I did not fare so badly and
                                    Georgie came off best. He is on a bottle now.

                                    There was some excitement here last Wednesday morning. At 6.30 am. I called
                                    for boiling water to make Georgie’s food. No water arrived but muffled shouting and the
                                    sound of blows came from the kitchen. I went to investigate and found a fierce fight in
                                    progress between the house boy and the kitchen boy. In my efforts to make them stop
                                    fighting I went too close and got a sharp bang on the mouth with the edge of an
                                    enamelled plate the kitchen boy was using as a weapon. My teeth cut my lip inside and
                                    the plate cut it outside and blood flowed from mouth to chin. The boys were petrified.
                                    By the time I had fed Georgie the lip was stiff and swollen. George went in wrath
                                    to the kitchen and by breakfast time both house boy and kitchen boy had swollen faces
                                    too. Since then I have a kettle of boiling water to hand almost before the words are out
                                    of my mouth. I must say that the fight was because the house boy had clouted the
                                    kitchen boy for keeping me waiting! In this land of piece work it is the job of the kitchen
                                    boy to light the fire and boil the kettle but the houseboy’s job to carry the kettle to me.
                                    I have seen little of Kath Wood or Marion Coster for the past two months. Major
                                    Jones is the neighbour who calls most regularly. He has a wireless set and calls on all of
                                    us to keep us up to date with world as well as local news. He often brings oranges for
                                    Ann who adores him. He is a very nice person but no oil painting and makes no effort to
                                    entertain Ann but she thinks he is fine. Perhaps his monocle appeals to her.

                                    George has bought a six foot long galvanised bath which is a great improvement
                                    on the smaller oval one we have used until now. The smaller one had grown battered
                                    from much use and leaks like a sieve. Fortunately our bathroom has a cement floor,
                                    because one had to fill the bath to the brim and then bath extremely quickly to avoid
                                    being left high and dry.

                                    Lots and lots of love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 1st December 1933

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Ann has not been well. We think she has had malaria. She has grown a good
                                    deal lately and looks much thinner and rather pale. Georgie is thriving and has such
                                    sparkling brown eyes and a ready smile. He and Ann make a charming pair, one so fair
                                    and the other dark.

                                    The Moltenos’ spent a few days here and took Georgie and me to Mbeya so
                                    that Georgie could be vaccinated. However it was an unsatisfactory trip because the
                                    doctor had no vaccine.

                                    George went to the Lupa with the Moltenos and returned to the farm in their Baby
                                    Austin which they have lent to us for a week. This was to enable me to go to Mbeya to
                                    have a couple of teeth filled by a visiting dentist.

                                    We went to Mbeya in the car on Saturday. It was quite a squash with the four of
                                    us on the front seat of the tiny car. Once George grabbed the babies foot instead of the
                                    gear knob! We had Georgie vaccinated at the hospital and then went to the hotel where
                                    the dentist was installed. Mr Dare, the dentist, had few instruments and they were very
                                    tarnished. I sat uncomfortably on a kitchen chair whilst he tinkered with my teeth. He filled
                                    three but two of the fillings came out that night. This meant another trip to Mbeya in the
                                    Baby Austin but this time they seem all right.

                                    The weather is very hot and dry and the garden a mess. We are having trouble
                                    with the young coffee trees too. Cut worms are killing off seedlings in the nursery and
                                    there is a borer beetle in the planted out coffee.

                                    George bought a large grey donkey from some wandering Masai and we hope
                                    the children will enjoy riding it later on.

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 14th February 1934.

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    You will be sorry to hear that little Ann has been very ill, indeed we were terribly
                                    afraid that we were going to lose her. She enjoyed her birthday on the 8th. All the toys
                                    you, and her English granny, sent were unwrapped with such delight. However next
                                    day she seemed listless and a bit feverish so I tucked her up in bed after lunch. I dosed
                                    her with quinine and aspirin and she slept fitfully. At about eleven o’clock I was
                                    awakened by a strange little cry. I turned up the night light and was horrified to see that
                                    Ann was in a convulsion. I awakened George who, as always in an emergency, was
                                    perfectly calm and practical. He filled the small bath with very warm water and emersed
                                    Ann in it, placing a cold wet cloth on her head. We then wrapped her in blankets and
                                    gave her an enema and she settled down to sleep. A few hours later we had the same
                                    thing over again.

                                    At first light we sent a runner to Mbeya to fetch the doctor but waited all day in
                                    vain and in the evening the runner returned to say that the doctor had gone to a case on
                                    the diggings. Ann had been feverish all day with two or three convulsions. Neither
                                    George or I wished to leave the bedroom, but there was Georgie to consider, and in
                                    the afternoon I took him out in the garden for a while whilst George sat with Ann.
                                    That night we both sat up all night and again Ann had those wretched attacks of
                                    convulsions. George and I were worn out with anxiety by the time the doctor arrived the
                                    next afternoon. Ann had not been able to keep down any quinine and had had only
                                    small sips of water since the onset of the attack.

                                    The doctor at once diagnosed the trouble as malaria aggravated by teething.
                                    George held Ann whilst the Doctor gave her an injection. At the first attempt the needle
                                    bent into a bow, George was furious! The second attempt worked and after a few hours
                                    Ann’s temperature dropped and though she was ill for two days afterwards she is now
                                    up and about. She has also cut the last of her baby teeth, thank God. She looks thin and
                                    white, but should soon pick up. It has all been a great strain to both of us. Georgie
                                    behaved like an angel throughout. He played happily in his cot and did not seem to
                                    sense any tension as people say, babies do. Our baby was cheerful and not at all
                                    subdued.

                                    This is the rainy season and it is a good thing that some work has been done on
                                    our road or the doctor might not have got through.

                                    Much love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 1st October 1934

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    We are all well now, thank goodness, but last week Georgie gave us such a
                                    fright. I was sitting on the verandah, busy with some sewing and not watching Ann and
                                    Georgie, who were trying to reach a bunch of bananas which hung on a rope from a
                                    beam of the verandah. Suddenly I heard a crash, Georgie had fallen backward over the
                                    edge of the verandah and hit the back of his head on the edge of the brick furrow which
                                    carries away the rainwater. He lay flat on his back with his arms spread out and did not
                                    move or cry. When I picked him up he gave a little whimper, I carried him to his cot and
                                    bathed his face and soon he began sitting up and appeared quite normal. The trouble
                                    began after he had vomited up his lunch. He began to whimper and bang his head
                                    against the cot.

                                    George and I were very worried because we have no transport so we could not
                                    take Georgie to the doctor and we could not bear to go through again what we had gone
                                    through with Ann earlier in the year. Then, in the late afternoon, a miracle happened. Two
                                    men George hardly knew, and complete strangers to me, called in on their way from the
                                    diggings to Mbeya and they kindly drove Georgie and me to the hospital. The Doctor
                                    allowed me to stay with Georgie and we spent five days there. Luckily he responded to
                                    treatment and is now as alive as ever. Children do put years on one!

                                    There is nothing much else to report. We have a new vegetable garden which is
                                    doing well but the earth here is strange. Gardens seem to do well for two years but by
                                    that time the soil is exhausted and one must move the garden somewhere else. The
                                    coffee looks well but it will be another year before we can expect even a few bags of
                                    coffee and prices are still low. Anyway by next year George should have some good
                                    return for all his hard work.

                                    Lots of love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. November 4th 1934

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    George is home from his White Hunting safari looking very sunburnt and well.
                                    The elderly American, who was his client this time, called in here at the farm to meet me
                                    and the children. It is amazing what spirit these old lads have! This one looked as though
                                    he should be thinking in terms of slippers and an armchair but no, he thinks in terms of
                                    high powered rifles with telescopic sights.

                                    It is lovely being together again and the children are delighted to have their Dad
                                    home. Things are always exciting when George is around. The day after his return
                                    George said at breakfast, “We can’t go on like this. You and the kids never get off the
                                    shamba. We’ll simply have to get a car.” You should have heard the excitement. “Get a
                                    car Daddy?’” cried Ann jumping in her chair so that her plaits bounced. “Get a car
                                    Daddy?” echoed Georgie his brown eyes sparkling. “A car,” said I startled, “However
                                    can we afford one?”

                                    “Well,” said George, “on my way back from Safari I heard that a car is to be sold
                                    this week at the Tukuyu Court, diseased estate or bankruptcy or something, I might get it
                                    cheap and it is an A.C.” The name meant nothing to me, but George explained that an
                                    A.C. is first cousin to a Rolls Royce.

                                    So off he went to the sale and next day the children and I listened all afternoon for
                                    the sound of an approaching car. We had many false alarms but, towards evening we
                                    heard what appeared to be the roar of an aeroplane engine. It was the A.C. roaring her
                                    way up our steep hill with a long plume of steam waving gaily above her radiator.
                                    Out jumped my beaming husband and in no time at all, he was showing off her
                                    points to an admiring family. Her lines are faultless and seats though worn are most
                                    comfortable. She has a most elegant air so what does it matter that the radiator leaks like
                                    a sieve, her exhaust pipe has broken off, her tyres are worn almost to the canvas and
                                    she has no windscreen. She goes, and she cost only five pounds.

                                    Next afternoon George, the kids and I piled into the car and drove along the road
                                    on lookout for guinea fowl. All went well on the outward journey but on the homeward
                                    one the poor A.C. simply gasped and died. So I carried the shot gun and George
                                    carried both children and we trailed sadly home. This morning George went with a bunch
                                    of farmhands and brought her home. Truly temperamental, she came home literally
                                    under her own steam.

                                    George now plans to get a second hand engine and radiator for her but it won’t
                                    be an A.C. engine. I think she is the only one of her kind in the country.
                                    I am delighted to hear, dad, that you are sending a bridle for Joseph for
                                    Christmas. I am busy making a saddle out of an old piece of tent canvas stuffed with
                                    kapok, some webbing and some old rug straps. A car and a riding donkey! We’re
                                    definitely carriage folk now.

                                    Lots of love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 28th December 1934

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Thank you for the wonderful Christmas parcel. My frock is a splendid fit. George
                                    declares that no one can knit socks like Mummy and the children love their toys and new
                                    clothes.

                                    Joseph, the donkey, took his bit with an air of bored resignation and Ann now
                                    rides proudly on his back. Joseph is a big strong animal with the looks and disposition of
                                    a mule. he will not go at all unless a native ‘toto’ walks before him and when he does go
                                    he wears a pained expression as though he were carrying fourteen stone instead of
                                    Ann’s fly weight. I walk beside the donkey carrying Georgie and our cat, ‘Skinny Winnie’,
                                    follows behind. Quite a cavalcade. The other day I got so exasperated with Joseph that
                                    I took Ann off and I got on. Joseph tottered a few paces and sat down! to the huge
                                    delight of our farm labourers who were going home from work. Anyway, one good thing,
                                    the donkey is so lazy that there is little chance of him bolting with Ann.

                                    The Moltenos spent Christmas with us and left for the Lupa Diggings yesterday.
                                    They arrived on the 22nd. with gifts for the children and chocolates and beer. That very
                                    afternoon George and John Molteno left for Ivuna, near Lake Ruckwa, to shoot some
                                    guinea fowl and perhaps a goose for our Christmas dinner. We expected the menfolk
                                    back on Christmas Eve and Anne and I spent a busy day making mince pies and
                                    sausage rolls. Why I don’t know, because I am sure Abel could have made them better.
                                    We decorated the Christmas tree and sat up very late but no husbands turned up.
                                    Christmas day passed but still no husbands came. Anne, like me, is expecting a baby
                                    and we both felt pretty forlorn and cross. Anne was certain that they had been caught up
                                    in a party somewhere and had forgotten all about us and I must say when Boxing Day
                                    went by and still George and John did not show up I felt ready to agree with her.
                                    They turned up towards evening and explained that on the homeward trip the car
                                    had bogged down in the mud and that they had spent a miserable Christmas. Anne
                                    refused to believe their story so George, to prove their case, got the game bag and
                                    tipped the contents on to the dining room table. Out fell several guinea fowl, long past
                                    being edible, followed by a large goose so high that it was green and blue where all the
                                    feathers had rotted off.

                                    The stench was too much for two pregnant girls. I shot out of the front door
                                    closely followed by Anne and we were both sick in the garden.

                                    I could not face food that evening but Anne is made of stronger stuff and ate her
                                    belated Christmas dinner with relish.

                                    I am looking forward enormously to having Marjorie here with us. She will be able
                                    to carry back to you an eyewitness account of our home and way of life.

                                    Much love to you all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 5th January 1935

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    You cannot imagine how lovely it is to have Marjorie here. She came just in time
                                    because I have had pernicious vomiting and have lost a great deal of weight and she
                                    took charge of the children and made me spend three days in hospital having treatment.
                                    George took me to the hospital on the afternoon of New Years Eve and decided
                                    to spend the night at the hotel and join in the New Years Eve celebrations. I had several
                                    visitors at the hospital that evening and George actually managed to get some imported
                                    grapes for me. He returned to the farm next morning and fetched me from the hospital
                                    four days later. Of course the old A.C. just had to play up. About half way home the
                                    back axle gave in and we had to send a passing native some miles back to a place
                                    called Mbalizi to hire a lorry from a Greek trader to tow us home to the farm.
                                    The children looked well and were full of beans. I think Marjorie was thankful to
                                    hand them over to me. She is delighted with Ann’s motherly little ways but Georgie she
                                    calls “a really wild child”. He isn’t, just has such an astonishing amount of energy and is
                                    always up to mischief. Marjorie brought us all lovely presents. I am so thrilled with my
                                    sewing machine. It may be an old model but it sews marvellously. We now have an
                                    Alsatian pup as well as Joseph the donkey and the two cats.

                                    Marjorie had a midnight encounter with Joseph which gave her quite a shock but
                                    we had a good laugh about it next day. Some months ago George replaced our wattle
                                    and daub outside pit lavatory by a substantial brick one, so large that Joseph is being
                                    temporarily stabled in it at night. We neglected to warn Marj about this and one night,
                                    storm lamp in hand, she opened the door and Joseph walked out braying his thanks.
                                    I am afraid Marjorie is having a quiet time, a shame when the journey from Cape
                                    Town is so expensive. The doctor has told me to rest as much as I can, so it is
                                    impossible for us to take Marj on sight seeing trips.

                                    I hate to think that she will be leaving in ten days time.

                                    Much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 18th February 1935

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    You must be able to visualise our life here quite well now that Marj is back and
                                    has no doubt filled in all the details I forget to mention in my letters. What a journey we
                                    had in the A.C. when we took her to the plane. George, the children and I sat in front and
                                    Marj sat behind with numerous four gallon tins of water for the insatiable radiator. It was
                                    raining and the canvas hood was up but part of the side flaps are missing and as there is
                                    no glass in the windscreen the rain blew in on us. George got fed up with constantly
                                    removing the hot radiator cap so simply stuffed a bit of rag in instead. When enough
                                    steam had built up in the radiator behind the rag it blew out and we started all over again.
                                    The car still roars like an aeroplane engine and yet has little power so that George sent
                                    gangs of boys to the steep hills between the farm and the Mission to give us a push if
                                    necessary. Fortunately this time it was not, and the boys cheered us on our way. We
                                    needed their help on the homeward journey however.

                                    George has now bought an old Chev engine which he means to install before I
                                    have to go to hospital to have my new baby. It will be quite an engineering feet as
                                    George has few tools.

                                    I am sorry to say that I am still not well, something to do with kidneys or bladder.
                                    George bought me some pills from one of the several small shops which have opened
                                    in Mbeya and Ann is most interested in the result. She said seriously to Kath Wood,
                                    “Oh my Mummy is a very clever Mummy. She can do blue wee and green wee as well
                                    as yellow wee.” I simply can no longer manage the children without help and have
                                    engaged the cook’s wife, Janey, to help. The children are by no means thrilled. I plead in
                                    vain that I am not well enough to go for walks. Ann says firmly, “Ann doesn’t want to go
                                    for a walk. Ann will look after you.” Funny, though she speaks well for a three year old,
                                    she never uses the first person. Georgie say he would much rather walk with
                                    Keshokutwa, the kitchen boy. His name by the way, means day-after-tomorrow and it
                                    suits him down to the ground, Kath Wood walks over sometimes with offers of help and Ann will gladly go walking with her but Georgie won’t. He on the other hand will walk with Anne Molteno
                                    and Ann won’t. They are obstinate kids. Ann has developed a very fertile imagination.
                                    She has probably been looking at too many of those nice women’s magazines you
                                    sent. A few days ago she said, “You are sick Mummy, but Ann’s got another Mummy.
                                    She’s not sick, and my other mummy (very smugly) has lovely golden hair”. This
                                    morning’ not ten minutes after I had dressed her, she came in with her frock wet and
                                    muddy. I said in exasperation, “Oh Ann, you are naughty.” To which she instantly
                                    returned, “My other Mummy doesn’t think I am naughty. She thinks I am very nice.” It
                                    strikes me I shall have to get better soon so that I can be gay once more and compete
                                    with that phantom golden haired paragon.

                                    We had a very heavy storm over the farm last week. There was heavy rain with
                                    hail which stripped some of the coffee trees and the Mchewe River flooded and the
                                    water swept through the lower part of the shamba. After the water had receded George
                                    picked up a fine young trout which had been stranded. This was one of some he had
                                    put into the river when Georgie was a few months old.

                                    The trials of a coffee farmer are legion. We now have a plague of snails. They
                                    ring bark the young trees and leave trails of slime on the glossy leaves. All the ring
                                    barked trees will have to be cut right back and this is heartbreaking as they are bearing
                                    berries for the first time. The snails are collected by native children, piled upon the
                                    ground and bashed to a pulp which gives off a sickening stench. I am sorry for the local
                                    Africans. Locusts ate up their maize and now they are losing their bean crop to the snails.

                                    Lots of love, Eleanor

                                    #6260
                                    TracyTracy
                                    Participant

                                      From Tanganyika with Love

                                      With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                      • “The letters of Eleanor Dunbar Leslie to her parents and her sister in South Africa
                                        concerning her life with George Gilman Rushby of Tanganyika, and the trials and
                                        joys of bringing up a family in pioneering conditions.

                                      These letters were transcribed from copies of letters typed by Eleanor Rushby from
                                      the originals which were in the estate of Marjorie Leslie, Eleanor’s sister. Eleanor
                                      kept no diary of her life in Tanganyika, so these letters were the living record of an
                                      important part of her life.

                                      Prelude
                                      Having walked across Africa from the East coast to Ubangi Shauri Chad
                                      in French Equatorial Africa, hunting elephant all the way, George Rushby
                                      made his way down the Congo to Leopoldville. He then caught a ship to
                                      Europe and had a holiday in Brussels and Paris before visiting his family
                                      in England. He developed blackwater fever and was extremely ill for a
                                      while. When he recovered he went to London to arrange his return to
                                      Africa.

                                      Whilst staying at the Overseas Club he met Eileen Graham who had come
                                      to England from Cape Town to study music. On hearing that George was
                                      sailing for Cape Town she arranged to introduce him to her friend
                                      Eleanor Dunbar Leslie. “You’ll need someone lively to show you around,”
                                      she said. “She’s as smart as paint, a keen mountaineer, a very good school
                                      teacher, and she’s attractive. You can’t miss her, because her father is a
                                      well known Cape Town Magistrate. And,” she added “I’ve already written
                                      and told her what ship you are arriving on.”

                                      Eleanor duly met the ship. She and George immediately fell in love.
                                      Within thirty six hours he had proposed marriage and was accepted
                                      despite the misgivings of her parents. As she was under contract to her
                                      High School, she remained in South Africa for several months whilst
                                      George headed for Tanganyika looking for a farm where he could build
                                      their home.

                                      These details are a summary of chapter thirteen of the Biography of
                                      George Gilman Rushby ‘The Hunter is Death “ by T.V.Bulpin.

                                       

                                      Dearest Marj,
                                      Terrifically exciting news! I’ve just become engaged to an Englishman whom I
                                      met last Monday. The result is a family upheaval which you will have no difficulty in
                                      imagining!!

                                      The Aunts think it all highly romantic and cry in delight “Now isn’t that just like our
                                      El!” Mummy says she doesn’t know what to think, that anyway I was always a harum
                                      scarum and she rather expected something like this to happen. However I know that
                                      she thinks George highly attractive. “Such a nice smile and gentle manner, and such
                                      good hands“ she murmurs appreciatively. “But WHY AN ELEPHANT HUNTER?” she
                                      ends in a wail, as though elephant hunting was an unmentionable profession.
                                      Anyway I don’t think so. Anyone can marry a bank clerk or a lawyer or even a
                                      millionaire – but whoever heard of anyone marrying anyone as exciting as an elephant
                                      hunter? I’m thrilled to bits.

                                      Daddy also takes a dim view of George’s profession, and of George himself as
                                      a husband for me. He says that I am so impulsive and have such wild enthusiasms that I
                                      need someone conservative and steady to give me some serenity and some ballast.
                                      Dad says George is a handsome fellow and a good enough chap he is sure, but
                                      he is obviously a man of the world and hints darkly at a possible PAST. George says
                                      he has nothing of the kind and anyway I’m the first girl he has asked to marry him. I don’t
                                      care anyway, I’d gladly marry him tomorrow, but Dad has other ideas.

                                      He sat in his armchair to deliver his verdict, wearing the same look he must wear
                                      on the bench. If we marry, and he doesn’t think it would be a good thing, George must
                                      buy a comfortable house for me in Central Africa where I can stay safely when he goes
                                      hunting. I interrupted to say “But I’m going too”, but dad snubbed me saying that in no
                                      time at all I’ll have a family and one can’t go dragging babies around in the African Bush.”
                                      George takes his lectures with surprising calm. He says he can see Dad’s point of
                                      view much better than I can. He told the parents today that he plans to buy a small
                                      coffee farm in the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and will build a cosy cottage which
                                      will be a proper home for both of us, and that he will only hunt occasionally to keep the
                                      pot boiling.

                                      Mummy, of course, just had to spill the beans. She said to George, “I suppose
                                      you know that Eleanor knows very little about house keeping and can’t cook at all.” a fact
                                      that I was keeping a dark secret. But George just said, “Oh she won’t have to work. The
                                      boys do all that sort of thing. She can lie on a couch all day and read if she likes.” Well
                                      you always did say that I was a “Lily of the field,” and what a good thing! If I were one of
                                      those terribly capable women I’d probably die of frustration because it seems that
                                      African house boys feel that they have lost face if their Memsahibs do anything but the
                                      most gracious chores.

                                      George is absolutely marvellous. He is strong and gentle and awfully good
                                      looking too. He is about 5 ft 10 ins tall and very broad. He wears his curly brown hair cut
                                      very short and has a close clipped moustache. He has strongly marked eyebrows and
                                      very striking blue eyes which sometimes turn grey or green. His teeth are strong and
                                      even and he has a quiet voice.

                                      I expect all this sounds too good to be true, but come home quickly and see for
                                      yourself. George is off to East Africa in three weeks time to buy our farm. I shall follow as
                                      soon as he has bought it and we will be married in Dar es Salaam.

                                      Dad has taken George for a walk “to get to know him” and that’s why I have time
                                      to write such a long screed. They should be back any minute now and I must fly and
                                      apply a bit of glamour.

                                      Much love my dear,
                                      your jubilant
                                      Eleanor

                                      S.S.Timavo. Durban. 28th.October. 1930.

                                      Dearest Family,
                                      Thank you for the lovely send off. I do wish you were all on board with me and
                                      could come and dance with me at my wedding. We are having a very comfortable
                                      voyage. There were only four of the passengers as far as Durban, all of them women,
                                      but I believe we are taking on more here. I have a most comfortable deck cabin to
                                      myself and the use of a sumptuous bathroom. No one is interested in deck games and I
                                      am having a lazy time, just sunbathing and reading.

                                      I sit at the Captain’s table and the meals are delicious – beautifully served. The
                                      butter for instance, is moulded into sprays of roses, most exquisitely done, and as for
                                      the ice-cream, I’ve never tasted anything like them.

                                      The meals are continental type and we have hors d’oeuvre in a great variety
                                      served on large round trays. The Italians souse theirs with oil, Ugh! We also of course
                                      get lots of spaghetti which I have some difficulty in eating. However this presents no
                                      problem to the Chief Engineer who sits opposite to me. He simply rolls it around his
                                      fork and somehow the spaghetti flows effortlessly from fork to mouth exactly like an
                                      ascending escalator. Wine is served at lunch and dinner – very mild and pleasant stuff.
                                      Of the women passengers the one i liked best was a young German widow
                                      from South west Africa who left the ship at East London to marry a man she had never
                                      met. She told me he owned a drapers shop and she was very happy at the prospect
                                      of starting a new life, as her previous marriage had ended tragically with the death of her
                                      husband and only child in an accident.

                                      I was most interested to see the bridegroom and stood at the rail beside the gay
                                      young widow when we docked at East London. I picked him out, without any difficulty,
                                      from the small group on the quay. He was a tall thin man in a smart grey suit and with a
                                      grey hat perched primly on his head. You can always tell from hats can’t you? I wasn’t
                                      surprised to see, when this German raised his head, that he looked just like the Kaiser’s
                                      “Little Willie”. Long thin nose and cold grey eyes and no smile of welcome on his tight
                                      mouth for the cheery little body beside me. I quite expected him to jerk his thumb and
                                      stalk off, expecting her to trot at his heel.

                                      However she went off blithely enough. Next day before the ship sailed, she
                                      was back and I saw her talking to the Captain. She began to cry and soon after the
                                      Captain patted her on the shoulder and escorted her to the gangway. Later the Captain
                                      told me that the girl had come to ask him to allow her to work her passage back to
                                      Germany where she had some relations. She had married the man the day before but
                                      she disliked him because he had deceived her by pretending that he owned a shop
                                      whereas he was only a window dresser. Bad show for both.

                                      The Captain and the Chief Engineer are the only officers who mix socially with
                                      the passengers. The captain seems rather a melancholy type with, I should say, no
                                      sense of humour. He speaks fair English with an American accent. He tells me that he
                                      was on the San Francisco run during Prohibition years in America and saw many Film
                                      Stars chiefly “under the influence” as they used to flock on board to drink. The Chief
                                      Engineer is big and fat and cheerful. His English is anything but fluent but he makes up
                                      for it in mime.

                                      I visited the relations and friends at Port Elizabeth and East London, and here at
                                      Durban. I stayed with the Trotters and Swans and enjoyed myself very much at both
                                      places. I have collected numerous wedding presents, china and cutlery, coffee
                                      percolator and ornaments, and where I shall pack all these things I don’t know. Everyone has been terribly kind and I feel extremely well and happy.

                                      At the start of the voyage I had a bit of bad luck. You will remember that a
                                      perfectly foul South Easter was blowing. Some men were busy working on a deck
                                      engine and I stopped to watch and a tiny fragment of steel blew into my eye. There is
                                      no doctor on board so the stewardess put some oil into the eye and bandaged it up.
                                      The eye grew more and more painful and inflamed and when when we reached Port
                                      Elizabeth the Captain asked the Port Doctor to look at it. The Doctor said it was a job for
                                      an eye specialist and telephoned from the ship to make an appointment. Luckily for me,
                                      Vincent Tofts turned up at the ship just then and took me off to the specialist and waited
                                      whilst he extracted the fragment with a giant magnet. The specialist said that I was very
                                      lucky as the thing just missed the pupil of my eye so my sight will not be affected. I was
                                      temporarily blinded by the Belladona the eye-man put in my eye so he fitted me with a
                                      pair of black goggles and Vincent escorted me back to the ship. Don’t worry the eye is
                                      now as good as ever and George will not have to take a one-eyed bride for better or
                                      worse.

                                      I have one worry and that is that the ship is going to be very much overdue by
                                      the time we reach Dar es Salaam. She is taking on a big wool cargo and we were held
                                      up for three days in East london and have been here in Durban for five days.
                                      Today is the ninth Anniversary of the Fascist Movement and the ship was
                                      dressed with bunting and flags. I must now go and dress for the gala dinner.

                                      Bless you all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      S.S.Timavo. 6th. November 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Nearly there now. We called in at Lourenco Marques, Beira, Mozambique and
                                      Port Amelia. I was the only one of the original passengers left after Durban but there we
                                      took on a Mrs Croxford and her mother and two men passengers. Mrs C must have
                                      something, certainly not looks. She has a flat figure, heavily mascared eyes and crooked
                                      mouth thickly coated with lipstick. But her rather sweet old mother-black-pearls-type tells
                                      me they are worn out travelling around the world trying to shake off an admirer who
                                      pursues Mrs C everywhere.

                                      The one male passenger is very quiet and pleasant. The old lady tells me that he
                                      has recently lost his wife. The other passenger is a horribly bumptious type.
                                      I had my hair beautifully shingled at Lourenco Marques, but what an experience it
                                      was. Before we docked I asked the Captain whether he knew of a hairdresser, but he
                                      said he did not and would have to ask the agent when he came aboard. The agent was
                                      a very suave Asian. He said “Sure he did” and offered to take me in his car. I rather
                                      doubtfully agreed — such a swarthy gentleman — and was driven, not to a hairdressing
                                      establishment, but to his office. Then he spoke to someone on the telephone and in no
                                      time at all a most dago-y type arrived carrying a little black bag. He was all patent
                                      leather, hair, and flashing smile, and greeted me like an old and valued friend.
                                      Before I had collected my scattered wits tthe Agent had flung open a door and
                                      ushered me through, and I found myself seated before an ornate mirror in what was only
                                      too obviously a bedroom. It was a bedroom with a difference though. The unmade bed
                                      had no legs but hung from the ceiling on brass chains.

                                      The agent beamingly shut the door behind him and I was left with my imagination
                                      and the afore mentioned oily hairdresser. He however was very business like. Before I
                                      could say knife he had shingled my hair with a cut throat razor and then, before I could
                                      protest, had smothered my neck in stinking pink powder applied with an enormous and
                                      filthy swansdown powder puff. He held up a mirror for me to admire his handiwork but I
                                      was aware only of the enormous bed reflected in it, and hurriedly murmuring “very nice,
                                      very nice” I made my escape to the outer office where, to my relief, I found the Chief
                                      Engineer who escorted me back to the ship.

                                      In the afternoon Mrs Coxford and the old lady and I hired a taxi and went to the
                                      Polana Hotel for tea. Very swish but I like our Cape Peninsula beaches better.
                                      At Lorenco Marques we took on more passengers. The Governor of
                                      Portuguese Nyasaland and his wife and baby son. He was a large middle aged man,
                                      very friendly and unassuming and spoke perfect English. His wife was German and
                                      exquisite, as fragile looking and with the delicate colouring of a Dresden figurine. She
                                      looked about 18 but she told me she was 28 and showed me photographs of two
                                      other sons – hefty youngsters, whom she had left behind in Portugal and was missing
                                      very much.

                                      It was frightfully hot at Beira and as I had no money left I did not go up to the
                                      town, but Mrs Croxford and I spent a pleasant hour on the beach under the Casurina
                                      trees.

                                      The Governor and his wife left the ship at Mozambique. He looked very
                                      imposing in his starched uniform and she more Dresden Sheperdish than ever in a
                                      flowered frock. There was a guard of honour and all the trimmings. They bade me a warm farewell and invited George and me to stay at any time.

                                      The German ship “Watussi” was anchored in the Bay and I decided to visit her
                                      and try and have my hair washed and set. I had no sooner stepped on board when a
                                      lady came up to me and said “Surely you are Beeba Leslie.” It was Mrs Egan and she
                                      had Molly with her. Considering Mrs Egan had not seen me since I was five I think it was
                                      jolly clever of her to recognise me. Molly is charming and was most friendly. She fixed
                                      things with the hairdresser and sat with me until the job was done. Afterwards I had tea
                                      with them.

                                      Port Amelia was our last stop. In fact the only person to go ashore was Mr
                                      Taylor, the unpleasant man, and he returned at sunset very drunk indeed.
                                      We reached Port Amelia on the 3rd – my birthday. The boat had anchored by
                                      the time I was dressed and when I went on deck I saw several row boats cluttered
                                      around the gangway and in them were natives with cages of wild birds for sale. Such tiny
                                      crowded cages. I was furious, you know me. I bought three cages, carried them out on
                                      to the open deck and released the birds. I expected them to fly to the land but they flew
                                      straight up into the rigging.

                                      The quiet male passenger wandered up and asked me what I was doing. I said
                                      “I’m giving myself a birthday treat, I hate to see caged birds.” So next thing there he
                                      was buying birds which he presented to me with “Happy Birthday.” I gladly set those
                                      birds free too and they joined the others in the rigging.

                                      Then a grinning steward came up with three more cages. “For the lady with
                                      compliments of the Captain.” They lost no time in joining their friends.
                                      It had given me so much pleasure to free the birds that I was only a little
                                      discouraged when the quiet man said thoughtfully “This should encourage those bird
                                      catchers you know, they are sold out. When evening came and we were due to sail I
                                      was sure those birds would fly home, but no, they are still there and they will probably
                                      remain until we dock at Dar es Salaam.

                                      During the morning the Captain came up and asked me what my Christian name
                                      is. He looked as grave as ever and I couldn’t think why it should interest him but said “the
                                      name is Eleanor.” That night at dinner there was a large iced cake in the centre of the
                                      table with “HELENA” in a delicate wreath of pink icing roses on the top. We had
                                      champagne and everyone congratulated me and wished me good luck in my marriage.
                                      A very nice gesture don’t you think. The unpleasant character had not put in an
                                      appearance at dinner which made the party all the nicer

                                      I sat up rather late in the lounge reading a book and by the time I went to bed
                                      there was not a soul around. I bathed and changed into my nighty,walked into my cabin,
                                      shed my dressing gown, and pottered around. When I was ready for bed I put out my
                                      hand to draw the curtains back and a hand grasped my wrist. It was that wretched
                                      creature outside my window on the deck, still very drunk. Luckily I was wearing that
                                      heavy lilac silk nighty. I was livid. “Let go at once”, I said, but he only grinned stupidly.
                                      “I’m not hurting you” he said, “only looking”. “I’ll ring for the steward” said I, and by
                                      stretching I managed to press the bell with my free hand. I rang and rang but no one
                                      came and he just giggled. Then I said furiously, “Remember this name, George
                                      Rushby, he is a fine boxer and he hates specimens like you. When he meets me at Dar
                                      es Salaam I shall tell him about this and I bet you will be sorry.” However he still held on
                                      so I turned and knocked hard on the adjoining wall which divided my cabin from Mrs
                                      Croxfords. Soon Mrs Croxford and the old lady appeared in dressing gowns . This
                                      seemed to amuse the drunk even more though he let go my wrist. So whilst the old
                                      lady stayed with me, Mrs C fetched the quiet passenger who soon hustled him off. He has kept out of my way ever since. However I still mean to tell George because I feel
                                      the fellow got off far too lightly. I reported the matter to the Captain but he just remarked
                                      that he always knew the man was low class because he never wears a jacket to meals.
                                      This is my last night on board and we again had free champagne and I was given
                                      some tooled leather work by the Captain and a pair of good paste earrings by the old
                                      lady. I have invited them and Mrs Croxford, the Chief Engineer, and the quiet
                                      passenger to the wedding.

                                      This may be my last night as Eleanor Leslie and I have spent this long while
                                      writing to you just as a little token of my affection and gratitude for all the years of your
                                      love and care. I shall post this letter on the ship and must turn now and get some beauty
                                      sleep. We have been told that we shall be in Dar es Salaam by 9 am. I am so excited
                                      that I shall not sleep.

                                      Very much love, and just for fun I’ll sign my full name for the last time.
                                      with my “bes respeks”,

                                      Eleanor Leslie.

                                      Eleanor and George Rushby:

                                      Eleanor and George Rushby

                                      Splendid Hotel, Dar es Salaam 11th November 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      I’m writing this in the bedroom whilst George is out buying a tin trunk in which to
                                      pack all our wedding presents. I expect he will be gone a long time because he has
                                      gone out with Hicky Wood and, though our wedding was four days ago, it’s still an
                                      excuse for a party. People are all very cheery and friendly here.
                                      I am wearing only pants and slip but am still hot. One swelters here in the
                                      mornings, but a fresh sea breeze blows in the late afternoons and then Dar es Salaam is
                                      heavenly.

                                      We arrived in Dar es Salaam harbour very early on Friday morning (7 th Nov).
                                      The previous night the Captain had said we might not reach Dar. until 9 am, and certainly
                                      no one would be allowed on board before 8 am. So I dawdled on the deck in my
                                      dressing gown and watched the green coastline and the islands slipping by. I stood on
                                      the deck outside my cabin and was not aware that I was looking out at the wrong side of
                                      the landlocked harbour. Quite unknown to me George and some friends, the Hickson
                                      Woods, were standing on the Gymkhana Beach on the opposite side of the channel
                                      anxiously scanning the ship for a sign of me. George says he had a horrible idea I had
                                      missed the ship. Blissfully unconscious of his anxiety I wandered into the bathroom
                                      prepared for a good soak. The anchor went down when I was in the bath and suddenly
                                      there was a sharp wrap on the door and I heard Mrs Croxford say “There’s a man in a
                                      boat outside. He is looking out for someone and I’m sure it’s your George. I flung on
                                      some clothes and rushed on deck with tousled hair and bare feet and it was George.
                                      We had a marvellous reunion. George was wearing shorts and bush shirt and
                                      looked just like the strong silent types one reads about in novels. I finished dressing then
                                      George helped me bundle all the wedding presents I had collected en route into my
                                      travelling rug and we went into the bar lounge to join the Hickson Woods. They are the
                                      couple from whom George bought the land which is to be our coffee farm Hicky-Wood
                                      was laughing when we joined them. he said he had called a chap to bring a couple of
                                      beers thinking he was the steward but it turned out to be the Captain. He does wear
                                      such a very plain uniform that I suppose it was easy to make the mistake, but Hicky
                                      says he was not amused.

                                      Anyway as the H-W’s are to be our neighbours I’d better describe them. Kath
                                      Wood is very attractive, dark Irish, with curly black hair and big brown eyes. She was
                                      married before to Viv Lumb a great friend of George’s who died some years ago of
                                      blackwater fever. They had one little girl, Maureen, and Kath and Hicky have a small son
                                      of three called Michael. Hicky is slightly below average height and very neat and dapper
                                      though well built. He is a great one for a party and good fun but George says he can be
                                      bad tempered.

                                      Anyway we all filed off the ship and Hicky and Cath went on to the hotel whilst
                                      George and I went through customs. Passing the customs was easy. Everyone
                                      seemed to know George and that it was his wedding day and I just sailed through,
                                      except for the little matter of the rug coming undone when George and I had to scramble
                                      on the floor for candlesticks and fruit knives and a wooden nut bowl.
                                      Outside the customs shed we were mobbed by a crowd of jabbering Africans
                                      offering their services as porters, and soon my luggage was piled in one rickshaw whilst
                                      George and I climbed into another and we were born smoothly away on rubber shod
                                      wheels to the Splendid Hotel. The motion was pleasing enough but it seemed weird to
                                      be pulled along by one human being whilst another pushed behind.  We turned up a street called Acacia Avenue which, as its name implies, is lined
                                      with flamboyant acacia trees now in the full glory of scarlet and gold. The rickshaw
                                      stopped before the Splendid Hotel and I was taken upstairs into a pleasant room which
                                      had its own private balcony overlooking the busy street.

                                      Here George broke the news that we were to be married in less than an hours
                                      time. He would have to dash off and change and then go straight to the church. I would
                                      be quite all right, Kath would be looking in and friends would fetch me.
                                      I started to dress and soon there was a tap at the door and Mrs Hickson-Wood
                                      came in with my bouquet. It was a lovely bunch of carnations and frangipani with lots of
                                      asparagus fern and it went well with my primrose yellow frock. She admired my frock
                                      and Leghorn hat and told me that her little girl Maureen was to be my flower girl. Then
                                      she too left for the church.

                                      I was fully dressed when there was another knock on the door and I opened it to
                                      be confronted by a Police Officer in a starched white uniform. I’m McCallum”, he said,
                                      “I’ve come to drive you to the church.” Downstairs he introduced me to a big man in a
                                      tussore silk suit. “This is Dr Shicore”, said McCallum, “He is going to give you away.”
                                      Honestly, I felt exactly like Alice in Wonderland. Wouldn’t have been at all surprised if
                                      the White Rabbit had popped up and said he was going to be my page.

                                      I walked out of the hotel and across the pavement in a dream and there, by the
                                      curb, was a big dark blue police car decorated with white ribbons and with a tall African
                                      Police Ascari holding the door open for me. I had hardly time to wonder what next when
                                      the car drew up before a tall German looking church. It was in fact the Lutheran Church in
                                      the days when Tanganyika was German East Africa.

                                      Mrs Hickson-Wood, very smart in mushroom coloured georgette and lace, and
                                      her small daughter were waiting in the porch, so in we went. I was glad to notice my
                                      friends from the boat sitting behind George’s friends who were all complete strangers to
                                      me. The aisle seemed very long but at last I reached George waiting in the chancel with
                                      Hicky-Wood, looking unfamiliar in a smart tussore suit. However this feeling of unreality
                                      passed when he turned his head and smiled at me.

                                      In the vestry after the ceremony I was kissed affectionately by several complete
                                      strangers and I felt happy and accepted by George’s friends. Outside the church,
                                      standing apart from the rest of the guests, the Italian Captain and Chief Engineer were
                                      waiting. They came up and kissed my hand, and murmured felicitations, but regretted
                                      they could not spare the time to come to the reception. Really it was just as well
                                      because they would not have fitted in at all well.

                                      Dr Shircore is the Director of Medical Services and he had very kindly lent his
                                      large house for the reception. It was quite a party. The guests were mainly men with a
                                      small sprinkling of wives. Champagne corks popped and there was an enormous cake
                                      and soon voices were raised in song. The chief one was ‘Happy Days Are Here Again’
                                      and I shall remember it for ever.

                                      The party was still in full swing when George and I left. The old lady from the ship
                                      enjoyed it hugely. She came in an all black outfit with a corsage of artificial Lily-of-the-
                                      Valley. Later I saw one of the men wearing the corsage in his buttonhole and the old
                                      lady was wearing a carnation.

                                      When George and I got back to the hotel,I found that my luggage had been
                                      moved to George’s room by his cook Lamek, who was squatting on his haunches and
                                      clapped his hands in greeting. My dears, you should see Lamek – exactly like a
                                      chimpanzee – receding forehead, wide flat nose, and long lip, and such splayed feet. It was quite a strain not to laugh, especially when he produced a gift for me. I have not yet
                                      discovered where he acquired it. It was a faded mauve straw toque of the kind worn by
                                      Queen Mary. I asked George to tell Lamek that I was touched by his generosity but felt
                                      that I could not accept his gift. He did not mind at all especially as George gave him a
                                      generous tip there and then.

                                      I changed into a cotton frock and shady straw hat and George changed into shorts
                                      and bush shirt once more. We then sneaked into the dining room for lunch avoiding our
                                      wedding guests who were carrying on the party in the lounge.

                                      After lunch we rejoined them and they all came down to the jetty to wave goodbye
                                      as we set out by motor launch for Honeymoon Island. I enjoyed the launch trip very
                                      much. The sea was calm and very blue and the palm fringed beaches of Dar es Salaam
                                      are as romantic as any bride could wish. There are small coral islands dotted around the
                                      Bay of which Honeymoon Island is the loveliest. I believe at one time it bore the less
                                      romantic name of Quarantine Island. Near the Island, in the shallows, the sea is brilliant
                                      green and I saw two pink jellyfish drifting by.

                                      There is no jetty on the island so the boat was stopped in shallow water and
                                      George carried me ashore. I was enchanted with the Island and in no hurry to go to the
                                      bungalow, so George and I took our bathing costumes from our suitcases and sent the
                                      luggage up to the house together with a box of provisions.

                                      We bathed and lazed on the beach and suddenly it was sunset and it began to
                                      get dark. We walked up the beach to the bungalow and began to unpack the stores,
                                      tea, sugar, condensed milk, bread and butter, sardines and a large tin of ham. There
                                      were also cups and saucers and plates and cutlery.

                                      We decided to have an early meal and George called out to the caretaker, “Boy
                                      letta chai”. Thereupon the ‘boy’ materialised and jabbered to George in Ki-Swaheli. It
                                      appeared he had no utensil in which to boil water. George, ever resourceful, removed
                                      the ham from the tin and gave him that. We had our tea all right but next day the ham
                                      was bad.

                                      Then came bed time. I took a hurricane lamp in one hand and my suitcase in the
                                      other and wandered into the bedroom whilst George vanished into the bathroom. To
                                      my astonishment I saw two perfectly bare iron bedsteads – no mattress or pillows. We
                                      had brought sheets and mosquito nets but, believe me, they are a poor substitute for a
                                      mattress.

                                      Anyway I arrayed myself in my pale yellow satin nightie and sat gingerly down
                                      on the iron edge of the bed to await my groom who eventually appeared in a
                                      handsome suit of silk pyjamas. His expression, as he took in the situation, was too much
                                      for me and I burst out laughing and so did he.

                                      Somewhere in the small hours I woke up. The breeze had dropped and the
                                      room was unbearably stuffy. I felt as dry as a bone. The lamp had been turned very
                                      low and had gone out, but I remembered seeing a water tank in the yard and I decided
                                      to go out in the dark and drink from the tap. In the dark I could not find my slippers so I
                                      slipped my feet into George’s shoes, picked up his matches and groped my way out
                                      of the room. I found the tank all right and with one hand on the tap and one cupped for
                                      water I stooped to drink. Just then I heard a scratchy noise and sensed movements
                                      around my feet. I struck a match and oh horrors! found that the damp spot on which I was
                                      standing was alive with white crabs. In my hurry to escape I took a clumsy step, put
                                      George’s big toe on the hem of my nightie and down I went on top of the crabs. I need
                                      hardly say that George was awakened by an appalling shriek and came rushing to my
                                      aid like a knight of old.  Anyway, alarms and excursions not withstanding, we had a wonderful weekend on the island and I was sorry to return to the heat of Dar es Salaam, though the evenings
                                      here are lovely and it is heavenly driving along the coast road by car or in a rickshaw.
                                      I was surprised to find so many Indians here. Most of the shops, large and small,
                                      seem to be owned by Indians and the place teems with them. The women wear
                                      colourful saris and their hair in long black plaits reaching to their waists. Many wear baggy
                                      trousers of silk or satin. They give a carnival air to the sea front towards sunset.
                                      This long letter has been written in instalments throughout the day. My first break
                                      was when I heard the sound of a band and rushed to the balcony in time to see The
                                      Kings African Rifles band and Askaris march down the Avenue on their way to an
                                      Armistice Memorial Service. They looked magnificent.

                                      I must end on a note of most primitive pride. George returned from his shopping
                                      expedition and beamingly informed me that he had thrashed the man who annoyed me
                                      on the ship. I felt extremely delighted and pressed for details. George told me that
                                      when he went out shopping he noticed to his surprise that the ‘Timavo” was still in the
                                      harbour. He went across to the Agents office and there saw a man who answered to the
                                      description I had given. George said to him “Is your name Taylor?”, and when he said
                                      “yes”, George said “Well my name is George Rushby”, whereupon he hit Taylor on the
                                      jaw so that he sailed over the counter and down the other side. Very satisfactory, I feel.
                                      With much love to all.

                                      Your cave woman
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 22 November 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Well here we are at our Country Seat, Mchewe Estate. (pronounced
                                      Mn,-che’-we) but I will start at the beginning of our journey and describe the farm later.
                                      We left the hotel at Dar es Salaam for the station in a taxi crowded with baggage
                                      and at the last moment Keith Wood ran out with the unwrapped bottom layer of our
                                      wedding cake. It remained in its naked state from there to here travelling for two days in
                                      the train on the luggage rack, four days in the car on my knee, reposing at night on the
                                      roof of the car exposed to the winds of Heaven, and now rests beside me in the tent
                                      looking like an old old tombstone. We have no tin large enough to hold it and one
                                      simply can’t throw away ones wedding cake so, as George does not eat cake, I can see
                                      myself eating wedding cake for tea for months to come, ants permitting.

                                      We travelled up by train from Dar to Dodoma, first through the lush vegetation of
                                      the coastal belt to Morogoro, then through sisal plantations now very overgrown with
                                      weeds owing to the slump in prices, and then on to the arid area around Dodoma. This
                                      part of the country is very dry at this time of the year and not unlike parts of our Karoo.
                                      The train journey was comfortable enough but slow as the engines here are fed with
                                      wood and not coal as in South Africa.

                                      Dodoma is the nearest point on the railway to Mbeya so we left the train there to
                                      continue our journey by road. We arrived at the one and only hotel in the early hours and
                                      whilst someone went to rout out the night watchman the rest of us sat on the dismal
                                      verandah amongst a litter of broken glass. Some bright spark remarked on the obvious –
                                      that there had been a party the night before.

                                      When we were shown to a room I thought I rather preferred the verandah,
                                      because the beds had not yet been made up and there was a bucket of vomit beside
                                      the old fashioned washstand. However George soon got the boys to clean up the
                                      room and I fell asleep to be awakened by George with an invitation to come and see
                                      our car before breakfast.

                                      Yes, we have our own car. It is a Chev, with what is called a box body. That
                                      means that sides, roof and doors are made by a local Indian carpenter. There is just the
                                      one front seat with a kapok mattress on it. The tools are kept in a sort of cupboard fixed
                                      to the side so there is a big space for carrying “safari kit” behind the cab seat.
                                      Lamek, who had travelled up on the same train, appeared after breakfast, and
                                      helped George to pack all our luggage into the back of the car. Besides our suitcases
                                      there was a huge bedroll, kitchen utensils and a box of provisions, tins of petrol and
                                      water and all Lamek’s bits and pieces which included three chickens in a wicker cage and
                                      an enormous bunch of bananas about 3 ft long.

                                      When all theses things were packed there remained only a small space between
                                      goods and ceiling and into this Lamek squeezed. He lay on his back with his horny feet a
                                      mere inch or so from the back of my head. In this way we travelled 400 miles over
                                      bumpy earth roads and crude pole bridges, but whenever we stopped for a meal
                                      Lamek wriggled out and, like Aladdin’s genie, produced good meals in no time at all.
                                      In the afternoon we reached a large river called the Ruaha. Workmen were busy
                                      building a large bridge across it but it is not yet ready so we crossed by a ford below
                                      the bridge. George told me that the river was full of crocodiles but though I looked hard, I
                                      did not see any. This is also elephant country but I did not see any of those either, only
                                      piles of droppings on the road. I must tell you that the natives around these parts are called Wahehe and the river is Ruaha – enough to make a cat laugh. We saw some Wahehe out hunting with spears
                                      and bows and arrows. They live in long low houses with the tiniest shuttered windows
                                      and rounded roofs covered with earth.

                                      Near the river we also saw a few Masai herding cattle. They are rather terrifying to
                                      look at – tall, angular, and very aloof. They wear nothing but a blanket knotted on one
                                      shoulder, concealing nothing, and all carried one or two spears.
                                      The road climbs steeply on the far side of the Ruaha and one has the most
                                      tremendous views over the plains. We spent our first night up there in the high country.
                                      Everything was taken out of the car, the bed roll opened up and George and I slept
                                      comfortably in the back of the car whilst Lamek, rolled in a blanket, slept soundly by a
                                      small fire nearby. Next morning we reached our first township, Iringa, and put up at the
                                      Colonist Hotel. We had a comfortable room in the annex overlooking the golf course.
                                      our room had its own little dressing room which was also the bathroom because, when
                                      ordered to do so, the room boy carried in an oval galvanised bath and filled it with hot
                                      water which he carried in a four gallon petrol tin.

                                      When we crossed to the main building for lunch, George was immediately hailed
                                      by several men who wanted to meet the bride. I was paid some handsome
                                      compliments but was not sure whether they were sincere or the result of a nice alcoholic
                                      glow. Anyhow every one was very friendly.

                                      After lunch I went back to the bedroom leaving George chatting away. I waited and
                                      waited – no George. I got awfully tired of waiting and thought I’d give him a fright so I
                                      walked out onto the deserted golf course and hid behind some large boulders. Soon I
                                      saw George returning to the room and the boy followed with a tea tray. Ah, now the hue
                                      and cry will start, thought I, but no, no George appeared nor could I hear any despairing
                                      cry. When sunset came I trailed crossly back to our hotel room where George lay
                                      innocently asleep on his bed, hands folded on his chest like a crusader on his tomb. In a
                                      moment he opened his eyes, smiled sleepily and said kindly, “Did you have a nice walk
                                      my love?” So of course I couldn’t play the neglected wife as he obviously didn’t think
                                      me one and we had a very pleasant dinner and party in the hotel that evening.
                                      Next day we continued our journey but turned aside to visit the farm of a sprightly
                                      old man named St.Leger Seaton whom George had known for many years, so it was
                                      after dark before George decided that we had covered our quota of miles for the day.
                                      Whilst he and Lamek unpacked I wandered off to a stream to cool my hot feet which had
                                      baked all day on the floor boards of the car. In the rather dim moonlight I sat down on the
                                      grassy bank and gratefully dabbled my feet in the cold water. A few minutes later I
                                      started up with a shriek – I had the sensation of red hot pins being dug into all my most
                                      sensitive parts. I started clawing my clothes off and, by the time George came to the
                                      rescue with the lamp, I was practically in the nude. “Only Siafu ants,” said George calmly.
                                      Take off all your clothes and get right in the water.” So I had a bathe whilst George
                                      picked the ants off my clothes by the light of the lamp turned very low for modesty’s
                                      sake. Siafu ants are beastly things. They are black ants with outsized heads and
                                      pinchers. I shall be very, very careful where I sit in future.

                                      The next day was even hotter. There was no great variety in the scenery. Most
                                      of the country was covered by a tree called Miombo, which is very ordinary when the
                                      foliage is a mature deep green, but when in new leaf the trees look absolutely beautiful
                                      as the leaves,surprisingly, are soft pastel shades of red and yellow.

                                      Once again we turned aside from the main road to visit one of George’s friends.
                                      This man Major Hugh Jones MC, has a farm only a few miles from ours but just now he is supervising the making of an airstrip. Major Jones is quite a character. He is below
                                      average height and skinny with an almost bald head and one nearly blind eye into which
                                      he screws a monocle. He is a cultured person and will, I am sure, make an interesting
                                      neighbour. George and Major Jones’ friends call him ‘Joni’ but he is generally known in
                                      this country as ‘Ropesoles’ – as he is partial to that type of footwear.
                                      We passed through Mbeya township after dark so I have no idea what the place
                                      is like. The last 100 miles of our journey was very dusty and the last 15 miles extremely
                                      bumpy. The road is used so little that in some places we had to plow our way through
                                      long grass and I was delighted when at last George turned into a side road and said
                                      “This is our place.” We drove along the bank of the Mchewe River, then up a hill and
                                      stopped at a tent which was pitched beside the half built walls of our new home. We
                                      were expected so there was hot water for baths and after a supper of tinned food and
                                      good hot tea, I climbed thankfully into bed.

                                      Next morning I was awakened by the chattering of the African workmen and was
                                      soon out to inspect the new surroundings. Our farm was once part of Hickson Wood’s
                                      land and is separated from theirs by a river. Our houses cannot be more than a few
                                      hundred yards apart as the crow flies but as both are built on the slopes of a long range
                                      of high hills, and one can only cross the river at the foot of the slopes, it will be quite a
                                      safari to go visiting on foot . Most of our land is covered with shoulder high grass but it
                                      has been partly cleared of trees and scrub. Down by the river George has made a long
                                      coffee nursery and a large vegetable garden but both coffee and vegetable seedlings
                                      are too small to be of use.

                                      George has spared all the trees that will make good shade for the coffee later on.
                                      There are several huge wild fig trees as big as oaks but with smooth silvery-green trunks
                                      and branches and there are lots of acacia thorn trees with flat tops like Japanese sun
                                      shades. I’ve seen lovely birds in the fig trees, Louries with bright plumage and crested
                                      heads, and Blue Rollers, and in the grasslands there are widow birds with incredibly long
                                      black tail feathers.

                                      There are monkeys too and horrible but fascinating tree lizards with blue bodies
                                      and orange heads. There are so many, many things to tell you but they must wait for
                                      another time as James, the house boy, has been to say “Bafu tiari” and if I don’t go at
                                      once, the bath will be cold.

                                      I am very very happy and terribly interested in this new life so please don’t
                                      worry about me.

                                      Much love to you all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate 29th. November 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      I’ve lots of time to write letters just now because George is busy supervising the
                                      building of the house from early morning to late afternoon – with a break for lunch of
                                      course.

                                      On our second day here our tent was moved from the house site to a small
                                      clearing further down the slope of our hill. Next to it the labourers built a ‘banda’ , which is
                                      a three sided grass hut with thatched roof – much cooler than the tent in this weather.
                                      There is also a little grass lav. so you see we have every convenience. I spend most of
                                      my day in the banda reading or writing letters. Occasionally I wander up to the house site
                                      and watch the building, but mostly I just sit.

                                      I did try exploring once. I wandered down a narrow path towards the river. I
                                      thought I might paddle and explore the river a little but I came round a bend and there,
                                      facing me, was a crocodile. At least for a moment I thought it was and my adrenaline
                                      glands got very busy indeed. But it was only an enormous monitor lizard, four or five
                                      feet long. It must have been as scared as I was because it turned and rushed off through
                                      the grass. I turned and walked hastily back to the camp and as I passed the house site I
                                      saw some boys killing a large puff adder. Now I do my walking in the evenings with
                                      George. Nothing alarming ever seems to happen when he is around.

                                      It is interesting to watch the boys making bricks for the house. They make a pile
                                      of mud which they trample with their feet until it is the right consistency. Then they fill
                                      wooden moulds with the clayey mud, and press it down well and turn out beautiful shiny,
                                      dark brown bricks which are laid out in rows and covered with grass to bake slowly in the
                                      sun.

                                      Most of the materials for the building are right here at hand. The walls will be sun
                                      dried bricks and there is a white clay which will make a good whitewash for the inside
                                      walls. The chimney and walls will be of burnt brick and tiles and George is now busy
                                      building a kiln for this purpose. Poles for the roof are being cut in the hills behind the
                                      house and every day women come along with large bundles of thatching grass on their
                                      heads. Our windows are modern steel casement ones and the doors have been made
                                      at a mission in the district. George does some of the bricklaying himself. The other
                                      bricklayer is an African from Northern Rhodesia called Pedro. It makes me perspire just
                                      to look at Pedro who wears an overcoat all day in the very hot sun.
                                      Lamek continues to please. He turns out excellent meals, chicken soup followed
                                      by roast chicken, vegetables from the Hickson-Woods garden and a steamed pudding
                                      or fruit to wind up the meal. I enjoy the chicken but George is fed up with it and longs for
                                      good red meat. The chickens are only about as large as a partridge but then they cost
                                      only sixpence each.

                                      I had my first visit to Mbeya two days ago. I put on my very best trousseau frock
                                      for the occasion- that yellow striped silk one – and wore my wedding hat. George didn’t
                                      comment, but I saw later that I was dreadfully overdressed.
                                      Mbeya at the moment is a very small settlement consisting of a bundle of small
                                      Indian shops – Dukas they call them, which stock European tinned foods and native soft
                                      goods which seem to be mainly of Japanese origin. There is a one storied Government
                                      office called the Boma and two attractive gabled houses of burnt brick which house the
                                      District Officer and his Assistant. Both these houses have lovely gardens but i saw them
                                      only from the outside as we did not call. After buying our stores George said “Lets go to the pub, I want you to meet Mrs Menzies.” Well the pub turned out to be just three or four grass rondavels on a bare
                                      plot. The proprietor, Ken Menzies, came out to welcome us. I took to him at once
                                      because he has the same bush sandy eyebrows as you have Dad. He told me that
                                      unfortunately his wife is away at the coast, and then he ushered me through the door
                                      saying “Here’s George with his bride.” then followed the Iringa welcome all over again,
                                      only more so, because the room was full of diggers from the Lupa Goldfields about fifty
                                      miles away.

                                      Champagne corks popped as I shook hands all around and George was
                                      clapped on the back. I could see he was a favourite with everyone and I tried not to be
                                      gauche and let him down. These men were all most kind and most appeared to be men
                                      of more than average education. However several were unshaven and looked as
                                      though they had slept in their clothes as I suppose they had. When they have a little luck
                                      on the diggings they come in here to Menzies pub and spend the lot. George says
                                      they bring their gold dust and small nuggets in tobacco tins or Kruschen salts jars and
                                      hand them over to Ken Menzies saying “Tell me when I’ve spent the lot.” Ken then
                                      weighs the gold and estimates its value and does exactly what the digger wants.
                                      However the Diggers get good value for their money because besides the drink
                                      they get companionship and good food and nursing if they need it. Mrs Menzies is a
                                      trained nurse and most kind and capable from what I was told. There is no doctor or
                                      hospital here so her experience as a nursing sister is invaluable.
                                      We had lunch at the Hotel and afterwards I poured tea as I was the only female
                                      present. Once the shyness had worn off I rather enjoyed myself.

                                      Now to end off I must tell you a funny story of how I found out that George likes
                                      his women to be feminine. You will remember those dashing black silk pyjamas Aunt
                                      Mary gave me, with flowered “happy coat” to match. Well last night I thought I’d give
                                      George a treat and when the boy called me for my bath I left George in the ‘banda’
                                      reading the London Times. After my bath I put on my Japanese pyjamas and coat,
                                      peered into the shaving mirror which hangs from the tent pole and brushed my hair until it
                                      shone. I must confess that with my fringe and shingled hair I thought I made quite a
                                      glamourous Japanese girl. I walked coyly across to the ‘banda’. Alas no compliment.
                                      George just glanced up from the Times and went on reading.
                                      He was away rather a long time when it came to his turn to bath. I glanced up
                                      when he came back and had a slight concussion. George, if you please, was arrayed in
                                      my very best pale yellow satin nightie. The one with the lace and ribbon sash and little
                                      bows on the shoulder. I knew exactly what he meant to convey. I was not to wear the
                                      trousers in the family. I seethed inwardly, but pretending not to notice, I said calmly “shall
                                      I call for food?” In this garb George sat down to dinner and it says a great deal for African
                                      phlegm that the boy did not drop the dishes.

                                      We conversed politely about this and that, and then, as usual, George went off
                                      to bed. I appeared to be engrossed in my book and did not stir. When I went to the
                                      tent some time later George lay fast asleep still in my nightie, though all I could see of it
                                      was the little ribbon bows looking farcically out of place on his broad shoulders.
                                      This morning neither of us mentioned the incident, George was up and dressed
                                      by the time I woke up but I have been smiling all day to think what a ridiculous picture
                                      we made at dinner. So farewell to pyjamas and hey for ribbons and bows.

                                      Your loving
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. Mbeya. 8th December 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      A mere shadow of her former buxom self lifts a languid pen to write to you. I’m
                                      convalescing after my first and I hope my last attack of malaria. It was a beastly
                                      experience but all is now well and I am eating like a horse and will soon regain my
                                      bounce.

                                      I took ill on the evening of the day I wrote my last letter to you. It started with a
                                      splitting headache and fits of shivering. The symptoms were all too familiar to George
                                      who got me into bed and filled me up with quinine. He then piled on all the available
                                      blankets and packed me in hot water bottles. I thought I’d explode and said so and
                                      George said just to lie still and I’d soon break into a good sweat. However nothing of the
                                      kind happened and next day my temperature was 105 degrees. Instead of feeling
                                      miserable as I had done at the onset, I now felt very merry and most chatty. George
                                      now tells me I sang the most bawdy songs but I hardly think it likely. Do you?
                                      You cannot imagine how tenderly George nursed me, not only that day but
                                      throughout the whole eight days I was ill. As we do not employ any African house
                                      women, and there are no white women in the neighbourhood at present to whom we
                                      could appeal for help, George had to do everything for me. It was unbearably hot in the
                                      tent so George decided to move me across to the Hickson-Woods vacant house. They
                                      have not yet returned from the coast.

                                      George decided I was too weak to make the trip in the car so he sent a
                                      messenger over to the Woods’ house for their Machila. A Machila is a canopied canvas
                                      hammock slung from a bamboo pole and carried by four bearers. The Machila duly
                                      arrived and I attempted to walk to it, clinging to George’s arm, but collapsed in a faint so
                                      the trip was postponed to the next morning when I felt rather better. Being carried by
                                      Machila is quite pleasant but I was in no shape to enjoy anything and got thankfully into
                                      bed in the Hickson-Woods large, cool and rather dark bedroom. My condition did not
                                      improve and George decided to send a runner for the Government Doctor at Tukuyu
                                      about 60 miles away. Two days later Dr Theis arrived by car and gave me two
                                      injections of quinine which reduced the fever. However I still felt very weak and had to
                                      spend a further four days in bed.

                                      We have now decided to stay on here until the Hickson-Woods return by which
                                      time our own house should be ready. George goes off each morning and does not
                                      return until late afternoon. However don’t think “poor Eleanor” because I am very
                                      comfortable here and there are lots of books to read and the days seem to pass very
                                      quickly.

                                      The Hickson-Wood’s house was built by Major Jones and I believe the one on
                                      his shamba is just like it. It is a square red brick building with a wide verandah all around
                                      and, rather astonishingly, a conical thatched roof. There is a beautiful view from the front
                                      of the house and a nice flower garden. The coffee shamba is lower down on the hill.
                                      Mrs Wood’s first husband, George’s friend Vi Lumb, is buried in the flower
                                      garden. He died of blackwater fever about five years ago. I’m told that before her
                                      second marriage Kath lived here alone with her little daughter, Maureen, and ran the farm
                                      entirely on her own. She must be quite a person. I bet she didn’t go and get malaria
                                      within a few weeks of her marriage.

                                      The native tribe around here are called Wasafwa. They are pretty primitive but
                                      seem amiable people. Most of the men, when they start work, wear nothing but some
                                      kind of sheet of unbleached calico wrapped round their waists and hanging to mid calf. As soon as they have drawn their wages they go off to a duka and buy a pair of khaki
                                      shorts for five or six shillings. Their women folk wear very short beaded skirts. I think the
                                      base is goat skin but have never got close enough for a good look. They are very shy.
                                      I hear from George that they have started on the roof of our house but I have not
                                      seen it myself since the day I was carried here by Machila. My letters by the way go to
                                      the Post Office by runner. George’s farm labourers take it in turn to act in this capacity.
                                      The mail bag is given to them on Friday afternoon and by Saturday evening they are
                                      back with our very welcome mail.

                                      Very much love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mbeya 23rd December 1930

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      George drove to Mbeya for stores last week and met Col. Sherwood-Kelly VC.
                                      who has been sent by the Government to Mbeya as Game Ranger. His job will be to
                                      protect native crops from raiding elephants and hippo etc., and to protect game from
                                      poachers. He has had no training for this so he has asked George to go with him on his
                                      first elephant safari to show him the ropes.

                                      George likes Col. Kelly and was quite willing to go on safari but not willing to
                                      leave me alone on the farm as I am still rather shaky after malaria. So it was arranged that
                                      I should go to Mbeya and stay with Mrs Harmer, the wife of the newly appointed Lands
                                      and Mines Officer, whose husband was away on safari.

                                      So here I am in Mbeya staying in the Harmers temporary wattle and daub
                                      house. Unfortunately I had a relapse of the malaria and stayed in bed for three days with
                                      a temperature. Poor Mrs Harmer had her hands full because in the room next to mine
                                      she was nursing a digger with blackwater fever. I could hear his delirious babble through
                                      the thin wall – very distressing. He died poor fellow , and leaves a wife and seven
                                      children.

                                      I feel better than I have done for weeks and this afternoon I walked down to the
                                      store. There are great signs of activity and people say that Mbeya will grow rapidly now
                                      owing to the boom on the gold fields and also to the fact that a large aerodrome is to be
                                      built here. Mbeya is to be a night stop on the proposed air service between England
                                      and South Africa. I seem to be the last of the pioneers. If all these schemes come about
                                      Mbeya will become quite suburban.

                                      26th December 1930

                                      George, Col. Kelly and Mr Harmer all returned to Mbeya on Christmas Eve and
                                      it was decided that we should stay and have midday Christmas dinner with the
                                      Harmers. Col. Kelly and the Assistant District Commissioner came too and it was quite a
                                      festive occasion, We left Mbeya in the early afternoon and had our evening meal here at
                                      Hickson-Wood’s farm. I wore my wedding dress.

                                      I went across to our house in the car this morning. George usually walks across to
                                      save petrol which is very expensive here. He takes a short cut and wades through the
                                      river. The distance by road is very much longer than the short cut. The men are now
                                      thatching the roof of our cottage and it looks charming. It consists of a very large living
                                      room-dinning room with a large inglenook fireplace at one end. The bedroom is a large
                                      square room with a smaller verandah room adjoining it. There is a wide verandah in the
                                      front, from which one has a glorious view over a wide valley to the Livingstone
                                      Mountains on the horizon. Bathroom and storeroom are on the back verandah and the
                                      kitchen is some distance behind the house to minimise the risk of fire.

                                      You can imagine how much I am looking forward to moving in. We have some
                                      furniture which was made by an Indian carpenter at Iringa, refrectory dining table and
                                      chairs, some small tables and two armchairs and two cupboards and a meatsafe. Other
                                      things like bookshelves and extra cupboards we will have to make ourselves. George
                                      has also bought a portable gramophone and records which will be a boon.
                                      We also have an Irish wolfhound puppy, a skinny little chap with enormous feet
                                      who keeps me company all day whilst George is across at our farm working on the
                                      house.

                                      Lots and lots of love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate 8th Jan 1931

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Alas, I have lost my little companion. The Doctor called in here on Boxing night
                                      and ran over and killed Paddy, our pup. It was not his fault but I was very distressed
                                      about it and George has promised to try and get another pup from the same litter.
                                      The Hickson-Woods returned home on the 29th December so we decided to
                                      move across to our nearly finished house on the 1st January. Hicky Wood decided that
                                      we needed something special to mark the occasion so he went off and killed a sucking
                                      pig behind the kitchen. The piglet’s screams were terrible and I felt that I would not be
                                      able to touch any dinner. Lamek cooked and served sucking pig up in the traditional way
                                      but it was high and quite literally, it stank. Our first meal in our own home was not a
                                      success.

                                      However next day all was forgotten and I had something useful to do. George
                                      hung doors and I held the tools and I also planted rose cuttings I had brought from
                                      Mbeya and sowed several boxes with seeds.

                                      Dad asked me about the other farms in the area. I haven’t visited any but there
                                      are five besides ours. One belongs to the Lutheran Mission at Utengule, a few miles
                                      from here. The others all belong to British owners. Nearest to Mbeya, at the foot of a
                                      very high peak which gives Mbeya its name, are two farms, one belonging to a South
                                      African mining engineer named Griffiths, the other to I.G.Stewart who was an officer in the
                                      Kings African Rifles. Stewart has a young woman called Queenie living with him. We are
                                      some miles further along the range of hills and are some 23 miles from Mbeya by road.
                                      The Mchewe River divides our land from the Hickson-Woods and beyond their farm is
                                      Major Jones.

                                      All these people have been away from their farms for some time but have now
                                      returned so we will have some neighbours in future. However although the houses are
                                      not far apart as the crow flies, they are all built high in the foothills and it is impossible to
                                      connect the houses because of the rivers and gorges in between. One has to drive right
                                      down to the main road and then up again so I do not suppose we will go visiting very
                                      often as the roads are very bumpy and eroded and petrol is so expensive that we all
                                      save it for occasional trips to Mbeya.

                                      The rains are on and George has started to plant out some coffee seedlings. The
                                      rains here are strange. One can hear the rain coming as it moves like a curtain along the
                                      range of hills. It comes suddenly, pours for a little while and passes on and the sun
                                      shines again.

                                      I do like it here and I wish you could see or dear little home.

                                      Your loving,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 1st April 1931

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Everything is now running very smoothly in our home. Lamek continues to
                                      produce palatable meals and makes wonderful bread which he bakes in a four gallon
                                      petrol tin as we have no stove yet. He puts wood coals on the brick floor of the kitchen,
                                      lays the tin lengh-wise on the coals and heaps more on top. The bread tins are then put
                                      in the petrol tin, which has one end cut away, and the open end is covered by a flat
                                      piece of tin held in place by a brick. Cakes are also backed in this make-shift oven and I
                                      have never known Lamek to have a failure yet.

                                      Lamek has a helper, known as the ‘mpishi boy’ , who does most of the hard
                                      work, cleans pots and pans and chops the firewood etc. Another of the mpishi boy’s
                                      chores is to kill the two chickens we eat each day. The chickens run wild during the day
                                      but are herded into a small chicken house at night. One of the kitchen boy’s first duties is
                                      to let the chickens out first thing in the early morning. Some time after breakfast it dawns
                                      on Lamek that he will need a chicken for lunch. he informs the kitchen boy who selects a
                                      chicken and starts to chase it in which he is enthusiastically joined by our new Irish
                                      wolfhound pup, Kelly. Together they race after the frantic fowl, over the flower beds and
                                      around the house until finally the chicken collapses from sheer exhaustion. The kitchen
                                      boy then hands it over to Lamek who murders it with the kitchen knife and then pops the
                                      corpse into boiling water so the feathers can be stripped off with ease.

                                      I pointed out in vain, that it would be far simpler if the doomed chickens were kept
                                      in the chicken house in the mornings when the others were let out and also that the correct
                                      way to pluck chickens is when they are dry. Lamek just smiled kindly and said that that
                                      may be so in Europe but that his way is the African way and none of his previous
                                      Memsahibs has complained.

                                      My houseboy, named James, is clean and capable in the house and also a
                                      good ‘dhobi’ or washboy. He takes the washing down to the river and probably
                                      pounds it with stones, but I prefer not to look. The ironing is done with a charcoal iron
                                      only we have no charcoal and he uses bits of wood from the kitchen fire but so far there
                                      has not been a mishap.

                                      It gets dark here soon after sunset and then George lights the oil lamps and we
                                      have tea and toast in front of the log fire which burns brightly in our inglenook. This is my
                                      favourite hour of the day. Later George goes for his bath. I have mine in the mornings
                                      and we have dinner at half past eight. Then we talk a bit and read a bit and sometimes
                                      play the gramophone. I expect it all sounds pretty unexciting but it doesn’t seem so to
                                      me.

                                      Very much love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate 20th April 1931

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      It is still raining here and the countryside looks very lush and green, very different
                                      from the Mbeya district I first knew, when plains and hills were covered in long brown
                                      grass – very course stuff that grows shoulder high.

                                      Most of the labourers are hill men and one can see little patches of cultivation in
                                      the hills. Others live in small villages near by, each consisting of a cluster of thatched huts
                                      and a few maize fields and perhaps a patch of bananas. We do not have labour lines on
                                      the farm because our men all live within easy walking distance. Each worker has a labour
                                      card with thirty little squares on it. One of these squares is crossed off for each days work
                                      and when all thirty are marked in this way the labourer draws his pay and hies himself off
                                      to the nearest small store and blows the lot. The card system is necessary because
                                      these Africans are by no means slaves to work. They work only when they feel like it or
                                      when someone in the family requires a new garment, or when they need a few shillings
                                      to pay their annual tax. Their fields, chickens and goats provide them with the food they
                                      need but they draw rations of maize meal beans and salt. Only our headman is on a
                                      salary. His name is Thomas and he looks exactly like the statues of Julius Caesar, the
                                      same bald head and muscular neck and sardonic expression. He comes from Northern
                                      Rhodesia and is more intelligent than the locals.

                                      We still live mainly on chickens. We have a boy whose job it is to scour the
                                      countryside for reasonable fat ones. His name is Lucas and he is quite a character. He
                                      has such long horse teeth that he does not seem able to close his mouth and wears a
                                      perpetual amiable smile. He brings his chickens in beehive shaped wicker baskets
                                      which are suspended on a pole which Lucas carries on his shoulder.

                                      We buy our groceries in bulk from Mbeya, our vegetables come from our
                                      garden by the river and our butter from Kath Wood. Our fresh milk we buy from the
                                      natives. It is brought each morning by three little totos each carrying one bottle on his
                                      shaven head. Did I tell you that the local Wasafwa file their teeth to points. These kids
                                      grin at one with their little sharks teeth – quite an “all-ready-to-eat-you-with-my-dear” look.
                                      A few nights ago a message arrived from Kath Wood to say that Queenie
                                      Stewart was very ill and would George drive her across to the Doctor at Tukuyu. I
                                      wanted George to wait until morning because it was pouring with rain, and the mountain
                                      road to Tukuyu is tricky even in dry weather, but he said it is dangerous to delay with any
                                      kind of fever in Africa and he would have to start at once. So off he drove in the rain and I
                                      did not see him again until the following night.

                                      George said that it had been a nightmare trip. Queenie had a high temperature
                                      and it was lucky that Kath was able to go to attend to her. George needed all his
                                      attention on the road which was officially closed to traffic, and very slippery, and in some
                                      places badly eroded. In some places the decking of bridges had been removed and
                                      George had to get out in the rain and replace it. As he had nothing with which to fasten
                                      the decking to the runners it was a dangerous undertaking to cross the bridges especially
                                      as the rivers are now in flood and flowing strongly. However they reached Tukuyu safely
                                      and it was just as well they went because the Doctor diagnosed Queenies illness as
                                      Spirillium Tick Fever which is a very nasty illness indeed.

                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 20th May 1931

                                      Dear Family,

                                      I’m feeling fit and very happy though a bit lonely sometimes because George
                                      spends much of his time away in the hills cutting a furrow miles long to bring water to the
                                      house and to the upper part of the shamba so that he will be able to irrigate the coffee
                                      during the dry season.

                                      It will be quite an engineering feat when it is done as George only has makeshift
                                      surveying instruments. He has mounted an ordinary cheap spirit level on an old camera
                                      tripod and has tacked two gramophone needles into the spirit level to give him a line.
                                      The other day part of a bank gave way and practically buried two of George’s labourers
                                      but they were quickly rescued and no harm was done. However he will not let them
                                      work unless he is there to supervise.

                                      I keep busy so that the days pass quickly enough. I am delighted with the
                                      material you sent me for curtains and loose covers and have hired a hand sewing
                                      machine from Pedro-of-the-overcoat and am rattling away all day. The machine is an
                                      ancient German one and when I say rattle, I mean rattle. It is a most cumbersome, heavy
                                      affair of I should say, the same vintage as George Stevenson’s Rocket locomotive.
                                      Anyway it sews and I am pleased with my efforts. We made a couch ourselves out of a
                                      native bed, a mattress and some planks but all this is hidden under the chintz cover and
                                      it looks quite the genuine bought article. I have some diversions too. Small black faced
                                      monkeys sit in the trees outside our bedroom window and they are most entertaining to
                                      watch. They are very mischievous though. When I went out into the garden this morning
                                      before breakfast I found that the monkeys had pulled up all my carnations. There they
                                      lay, roots in the air and whether they will take again I don’t know.

                                      I like the monkeys but hate the big mountain baboons that come and hang
                                      around our chicken house. I am terrified that they will tear our pup into bits because he is
                                      a plucky young thing and will rush out to bark at the baboons.

                                      George usually returns for the weekends but last time he did not because he had
                                      a touch of malaria. He sent a boy down for the mail and some fresh bread. Old Lucas
                                      arrived with chickens just as the messenger was setting off with mail and bread in a
                                      haversack on his back. I thought it might be a good idea to send a chicken to George so
                                      I selected a spry young rooster which I handed to the messenger. He, however,
                                      complained that he needed both hands for climbing. I then had one of my bright ideas
                                      and, putting a layer of newspaper over the bread, I tucked the rooster into the haversack
                                      and buckled down the flap so only his head protruded.

                                      I thought no more about it until two days later when the messenger again
                                      appeared for fresh bread. He brought a rather terse note from George saying that the
                                      previous bread was uneatable as the rooster had eaten some of it and messed on the
                                      rest. Ah me!

                                      The previous weekend the Hickson-Woods, Stewarts and ourselves, went
                                      across to Tukuyu to attend a dance at the club there. the dance was very pleasant. All
                                      the men wore dinner jackets and the ladies wore long frocks. As there were about
                                      twenty men and only seven ladies we women danced every dance whilst the surplus
                                      men got into a huddle around the bar. George and I spent the night with the Agricultural
                                      Officer, Mr Eustace, and I met his fiancee, Lillian Austin from South Africa, to whom I took
                                      a great liking. She is Governess to the children of Major Masters who has a farm in the
                                      Tukuyu district.

                                      On the Sunday morning we had a look at the township. The Boma was an old German one and was once fortified as the Africans in this district are a very warlike tribe.
                                      They are fine looking people. The men wear sort of togas and bands of cloth around
                                      their heads and look like Roman Senators, but the women go naked except for a belt
                                      from which two broad straps hang down, one in front and another behind. Not a graceful
                                      garb I assure you.

                                      We also spent a pleasant hour in the Botanical Gardens, laid out during the last
                                      war by the District Commissioner, Major Wells, with German prisoner of war labour.
                                      There are beautiful lawns and beds of roses and other flowers and shady palm lined
                                      walks and banana groves. The gardens are terraced with flights of brick steps connecting
                                      the different levels and there is a large artificial pond with little islands in it. I believe Major
                                      Wells designed the lake to resemble in miniature, the Lakes of Killarney.
                                      I enjoyed the trip very much. We got home at 8 pm to find the front door locked
                                      and the kitchen boy fast asleep on my newly covered couch! I hastily retreated to the
                                      bedroom whilst George handled the situation.

                                      Eleanor.

                                      #6255
                                      TracyTracy
                                      Participant

                                        My Grandparents

                                        George Samuel Marshall 1903-1995

                                        Florence Noreen Warren (Nora) 1906-1988

                                        I always called my grandfather Mop, apparently because I couldn’t say the name Grandpa, but whatever the reason, the name stuck. My younger brother also called him Mop, but our two cousins did not.

                                        My earliest memories of my grandparents are the picnics.  Grandma and Mop loved going out in the car for a picnic. Favourite spots were the Clee Hills in Shropshire, North Wales, especially Llanbedr, Malvern, and Derbyshire, and closer to home, the caves and silver birch woods at Kinver Edge, Arley by the river Severn, or Bridgnorth, where Grandma’s sister Hildreds family lived.  Stourbridge was on the western edge of the Black Country in the Midlands, so one was quickly in the countryside heading west.  They went north to Derbyshire less, simply because the first part of the trip entailed driving through Wolverhampton and other built up and not particularly pleasant urban areas.  I’m sure they’d have gone there more often, as they were both born in Derbyshire, if not for that initial stage of the journey.

                                        There was predominantly grey tartan car rug in the car for picnics, and a couple of folding chairs.  There were always a couple of cushions on the back seat, and I fell asleep in the back more times than I can remember, despite intending to look at the scenery.  On the way home Grandma would always sing,  “Show me the way to go home, I’m tired and I want to go to bed, I had a little drink about an hour ago, And it’s gone right to my head.”  I’ve looked online for that song, and have not found it anywhere!

                                        Grandma didn’t just make sandwiches for picnics, there were extra containers of lettuce, tomatoes, pickles and so on.  I used to love to wash up the picnic plates in the little brook on the Clee Hills, near Cleeton St Mary.  The close cropped grass was ideal for picnics, and Mop and the sheep would Baaa at each other.

                                        Mop would base the days outting on the weather forcast, but Grandma often used to say he always chose the opposite of what was suggested. She said if you want to go to Derbyshire, tell him you want to go to Wales.  I recall him often saying, on a gloomy day, Look, there’s a bit of clear sky over there.  Mop always did the driving as Grandma never learned to drive. Often she’d dust the dashboard with a tissue as we drove along.

                                        My brother and I often spent the weekend at our grandparents house, so that our parents could go out on a Saturday night.  They gave us 5 shillings pocket money, which I used to spend on two Ladybird books at 2 shillings and sixpence each.  We had far too many sweets while watching telly in the evening ~ in the dark, as they always turned the lights off to watch television.  The lemonade and pop was Corona, and came in returnable glass bottles.  We had Woodpecker cider too, even though it had a bit of an alcohol content.

                                        Mop smoked Kensitas and Grandma smoked Sovereign cigarettes, or No6, and the packets came with coupons.  They often let me choose something for myself out of the catalogue when there were enough coupons saved up.

                                        When I had my first garden, in a rented house a short walk from theirs, they took me to garden nurseries and taught me all about gardening.  In their garden they had berberis across the front of the house under the window, and cotoneaster all along the side of the garage wall. The silver birth tree on the lawn had been purloined as a sapling from Kinver edge, when they first moved into the house.  (they lived in that house on Park Road for more than 60 years).  There were perennials and flowering shrubs along the sides of the back garden, and behind the silver birch, and behind that was the vegeatable garden.  Right at the back was an Anderson shelter turned into a shed, the rhubarb, and the washing line, and the canes for the runner beans in front of those.  There was a little rose covered arch on the path on the left, and privet hedges all around the perimeter.

                                        My grandfather was a dental technician. He worked for various dentists on their premises over the years, but he always had a little workshop of his own at the back of his garage. His garage was full to the brim of anything that might potentially useful, but it was not chaotic. He knew exactly where to find anything, from the tiniest screw for spectacles to a useful bit of wire. He was “mechanicaly minded” and could always fix things like sewing machines and cars and so on.

                                        Mop used to let me sit with him in his workshop, and make things out of the pink wax he used for gums to embed the false teeth into prior to making the plaster casts. The porcelain teeth came on cards, and were strung in place by means of little holes on the back end of the teeth. I still have a necklace I made by threading teeth onto a string. There was a foot pedal operated drill in there as well, possibly it was a dentists drill previously, that he used with miniature grinding or polishing attachments. Sometimes I made things out of the pink acrylic used for the final denture, which had a strong smell and used to harden quickly, so you had to work fast. Initially, the workshop was to do the work for Uncle Ralph, Grandmas’s sisters husband, who was a dentist. In later years after Ralph retired, I recall a nice man called Claude used to come in the evening to collect the dentures for another dental laboratory. Mop always called his place of work the laboratory.

                                        Grandma loved books and was always reading, in her armchair next to the gas fire. I don’t recall seeing Mop reading a book, but he was amazingly well informed about countless topics.
                                        At family gatherings, Mops favourite topic of conversation after dinner was the atrocities committed over the centuries by organized religion.

                                        My grandfather played snooker in his younger years at the Conservative club. I recall my father assuming he voted Conservative, and Mop told him in no uncertain terms that he’s always voted Labour. When asked why he played snooker at the Conservative club and not the Labour club, he said with a grin that “it was a better class of people”, but that he’d never vote Conservative because it was of no benefit to the likes of us working people.

                                        Grandma and her sister in law Marie had a little grocers shop on Brettel Lane in Amblecote for a few years but I have no personal recollection of that as it was during the years we lived in USA. I don’t recall her working other than that. She had a pastry making day once a week, and made Bakewell tart, apple pie, a meat pie, and her own style of pizza. She had an old black hand operated sewing machine, and made curtains and loose covers for the chairs and sofa, but I don’t think she made her own clothes, at least not in later years. I have her sewing machine here in Spain.
                                        At regular intervals she’d move all the furniture around and change the front room into the living room and the back into the dining room and vice versa. In later years Mop always had the back bedroom (although when I lived with them aged 14, I had the back bedroom, and painted the entire room including the ceiling purple). He had a very lumpy mattress but he said it fit his bad hip perfectly.

                                        Grandma used to alternate between the tiny bedroom and the big bedroom at the front. (this is in later years, obviously) The wardrobes and chests of drawers never changed, they were oak and substantial, but rather dated in appearance. They had a grandfather clock with a brass face and a grandmother clock. Over the fireplace in the living room was a Utrillo print. The bathroom and lavatory were separate rooms, and the old claw foot bath had wood panels around it to make it look more modern. There was a big hot water geyser above it. Grandma was fond of using stick on Fablon tile effects to try to improve and update the appearance of the bathroom and kitchen. Mop was a generous man, but would not replace household items that continued to function perfectly well. There were electric heaters in all the rooms, of varying designs, and gas fires in living room and dining room. The coal house on the outside wall was later turned into a downstairs shower room, when Mop moved his bedroom downstairs into the front dining room, after Grandma had died and he was getting on.

                                        Utrillo

                                        Mop was 91 when he told me he wouldn’t be growing any vegetables that year. He said the sad thing was that he knew he’d never grow vegetables again. He worked part time until he was in his early 80s.

                                      Viewing 20 results - 21 through 40 (of 206 total)